Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n apostle_n know_v speak_v 2,580 5 4.3623 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
B10040 The perfection of justification maintained against the Pharise the purity of sanctification against the stainers of it: the unquestionablenesse of a future glorification aganst the Sadduce: in severall sermons. Together with an apologeticall answer to the ministers of the new province of London in vindication of the author against their aspersions. / by John Simpson, an unworthy publisher of gospel-truths in London. Simpson, John, 17th cent. 1648 (1648) Wing S3817A; ESTC R184177 253,105 558

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

word_n though_o i_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o adversary_n and_o opposer_n of_o this_o truth_n 2_o cor._n 4.13_o we_o believe_v &_o therefore_o we_o speak_v say_v the_o apostle_n so_o i_o do_v in_o spirit_n believe_v what_o i_o shall_v speak_v and_o therefore_o i_o be_o resolve_v to_o speak_v it_o forth_o plain_o and_o you_o be_v engage_v to_o hear_v i_o patient_o the_o word_n be_v a_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o precede_a premise_n in_o the_o precedent_a word_n the_o apostle_n deliver_v two_o proposition_n first_o that_o he_o that_o commit_v sin_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n second_o that_o christ_n have_v appear_v to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n from_o whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o he_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n can_v sin_v not_o have_v his_o be_v in_o the_o devil_n but_o in_o christ_n who_o destroy_v sin_n in_o this_o verse_n there_o be_v these_o particular_a observation_n which_o at_o the_o first_o view_n may_v present_v themselves_o unto_o we_o 1._o a_o character_n of_o a_o true_a christian_a he_o be_v one_o who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n 2._o the_o property_n of_o this_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n he_o do_v not_o commit_v sin_n 3._o a_o reason_n why_o he_o can_v commit_v sin_n to_o wit_n because_o his_o seed_n remain_v in_o he_o 4._o his_o purity_n he_o do_v not_o only_o not_o commit_v sin_n but_o he_o sin_v not_o at_o all_o 5._o this_o assert_v by_o lay_v down_o the_o impossibility_n of_o his_o sin_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o can_v possible_o sin_v 6._o this_o be_v further_a prove_v by_o his_o excellent_a &_o glorious_a condition_n he_o can_v sin_v because_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n first_o from_o the_o person_n who_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n we_o may_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o folly_n and_o bedlam-madnesse_n of_o some_o who_o will_v be_v account_v professor_n and_o preacher_n of_o a_o spiritual_a gospel_n who_o gospel_n and_o mystery_n of_o error_n do_v make_v the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n to_o be_v god_n confound_a the_o glorious_a nature_n of_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n with_o the_o new_a creature_n the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o overthrow_v this_o bedlam-divinity_n by_o these_o expression_n in_o which_o he_o do_v make_v a_o difference_n between_o god_n and_o the_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o he_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n be_v bear_v in_o time_n but_o god_n be_v from_o eternity_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n can_v be_v god_n the_o place_n which_o they_o pervert_v be_v in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 6.17_o he_o which_o be_v join_v to_o the_o lord_n be_v one_o spirit_n answ_n christ_n and_o the_o man_n join_v unto_o he_o be_v one_o not_o by_o confound_v of_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o person_n of_o a_o believer_n but_o by_o the_o union_n of_o these_o two_o in_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o member_n be_v one_o with_o the_o head_n and_o yet_o the_o head_n be_v not_o the_o member_n nor_o the_o member_n the_o head_n second_o in_o this_o objection_n as_o they_o destroy_v the_o personal_a be_v of_o a_o believer_n so_o they_o destroy_v the_o personal_a be_v of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v the_o word_n make_v flesh_n there_o christ_n be_v nothing_o but_o god_n they_o apprehend_v that_o christ_n have_v offer_v up_o his_o humane_a nature_n wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n as_o thing_n of_o the_o first_o creation_n and_o that_o he_o have_v no_o be_v now_o but_o in_o spirit_n which_o they_o call_v christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n the_o spiritual_a man_n or_o god_n i_o shall_v therefore_o in_o few_o word_n deliver_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n this_o phrase_n be_v take_v first_o large_o and_o so_o every_o creature_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o god_n because_o every_o creature_n be_v the_o workmanship_n of_o god_n and_o have_v its_o be_v from_o god_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n all_o wicked_a man_n be_v call_v the_o offspring_n of_o god_n act_v 17.28_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d second_o it_o be_v take_v strict_o and_o so_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o those_o who_o have_v their_o be_v from_o god_n by_o creation_n but_o by_o spiritual_a regeneration_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v here_o take_v and_o in_o other_o place_n john_n 3.5_o except_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n &_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n john_n 1_o 13._o in_o this_o sense_n neither_o god_n christ_n or_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o new_a man_n or_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n but_o the_o special_a and_o gracious_a presence_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n by_o the_o spirit_n do_v make_v a_o man_n a_o new_a creature_n 1_o cor._n 1.30_o john_n 1.13_o 2_o cor._n 5.17_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n that_o then_o he_o be_v christ_n or_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o new_a creature_n but_o that_o man_n who_o be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v the_o new_a creature_n have_v show_v you_o who_o the_o new_a man_n or_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v who_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o and_o free_v the_o text_n from_o famelisticall_a blasphemy_n i_o shall_v desire_v that_o you_o may_v be_v acquaint_v with_o this_o truth_n every_o true_a saint_n be_v a_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n 1_o consid_fw-la it_o will_v not_o advantage_v a_o man_n to_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o submit_v to_o all_o the_o outward_a ordinance_n of_o christ_n unless_o a_o man_n be_v make_v a_o new_a creature_n by_o christ_n gal._n 6.15_o in_o christ_n jesus_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncir_a cumcision_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n we_o must_v be_v bear_v again_o or_o else_o it_o have_v be_v better_a for_o we_o never_o to_o have_v be_v bear_v christ_n will_v not_o own_o any_o for_o he_o or_o approve_v they_o as_o his_o disciple_n whatsoever_o procession_n they_o do_v make_v of_o he_o unless_o he_o be_v form_v in_o they_o 2_o cor._n 13.5_o know_v you_o not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v unapprove_v they_o be_v the_o devil_n child_n who_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o god_n john_n 8.44_o 2_o consid_fw-la god_n have_v engage_v himself_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n that_o those_o who_o be_v his_o shall_v be_v bear_v of_o he_o ezek._n 36.26_o a_o new_a heart_n will_v i_o give_v you_o and_o a_o new_a spirit_n will_v i_o put_v within_o you_o and_o will_v take_v away_o the_o stony_a heart_n out_o of_o your_o flesh_n and_o give_v you_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n as_o a_o carver_n when_o he_o make_v a_o image_n do_v begin_v at_o the_o outside_n of_o the_o timber_n and_o cut_v &_o shave_v and_o smooth_v that_o so_o hypocrite_n do_v begin_v at_o the_o outside_n and_o do_v smooth_a themselves_o in_o their_o outward_a conversation_n to_o men-ward_n and_o so_o there_o be_v but_o a_o image_n instead_o of_o a_o new_a creature_n but_o true_a saint_n be_v make_v new_a inward_o some_o say_v that_o the_o heart_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n which_o have_v life_n cor_fw-la est_fw-la primum_fw-la vivens_fw-la it_o be_v true_a in_o the_o new_a creation_n god_n do_v give_v unto_o the_o vessel_n of_o his_o grace_n new_a heart_n rom._n 10.10_o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v unto_o righteousness_n jer._n 32.39_o 3._o consid_fw-la man_n who_o be_v not_o bear_v of_o god_n can_v have_v fellowship_n with_o god_n if_o we_o say_v that_o we_o have_v fellow_n ship_n with_o he_o and_o walk_v in_o darkness_n we_o lie_v 1_o john_n 1.6_o but_o true_a saint_n have_v fellowship_n with_o the_o father_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n 1_o john_n 1.3_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n 4_o consid_fw-la god_n be_v to_o be_v know_v serve_v and_o worship_v by_o true_a saint_n but_o we_o can_v true_o know_v he_o serve_v or_o worship_v he_o so_o long_o as_o we_o be_v old_a creature_n in_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o true_a saint_n be_v bear_v of_o he_o a_o old_a creature_n be_v spiritual_o dead_a and_o can_v see_v god_n a_o dead_a creature_n can_v perform_v the_o action_n of_o a_o live_a creature_n and_o a_o sinner_n can_v serve_v the_o live_a god_n and_o perform_v that_o spiritual_a worship_n which_o god_n do_v require_v of_o those_o who_o be_v quicken_v to_o spiritual_a worship_n by_o jesus_n christ_n 5._o consid_fw-la the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n be_v only_o provide_v for_o new_a creature_n but_o it_o be_v provide_v for_o saint_n and_o they_o expect_v it_o 2_o pet._n 3.13_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v bear_v
have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n or_o else_o such_o music_n will_v be_v in_o your_o heart_n as_o be_v in_o stephens_n when_o he_o pray_v lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n you_o shall_v have_v peace_n at_o the_o last_o which_o shall_v be_v everlasting_a the_o life_n of_o grace_n shall_v be_v lengthen_v out_o with_o a_o eternity_n of_o glory_n which_o god_n and_o the_o father_n grant_v unto_o you_o in_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n through_o his_o son_n our_o bless_a jesus_n and_o redeemer_n amen_n christ_n title_n to_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o saint_n maintain_v sermon_n ii_o christ_n be_v a_o christian_n shield_n and_o buckler_n so_o that_o none_o can_v strike_v at_o a_o christian_n but_o through_o the_o side_n and_o loin_n of_o his_o saviour_n we_o can_v wrong_v saint_n unless_o we_o injure_v the_o king_n of_o saint_n christ_n and_o his_o people_n have_v the_o same_o enemy_n this_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o opposer_n of_o the_o resurrection_n who_o as_o they_o be_v enemy_n to_o christian_n so_o they_o be_v to_o christ_n and_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o wrong_n to_o his_o people_n as_o they_o offer_v violence_n unto_o he_o as_o they_o will_v bereave_v his_o member_n of_o the_o happiness_n of_o their_o resurrection_n so_o they_o will_v rob_v he_o of_o his_o limb_n member_n and_o glory_n and_o therefore_o as_o i_o have_v plead_v against_o the_o live_a adversary_n of_o dead_a saint_n so_o i_o shall_v now_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n against_o those_o enemy_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n deny_v the_o raise_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o do_v fight_v against_o that_o truth_n which_o do_v next_o present_v itself_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o text_n in_o these_o word_n my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o arise_v i_o must_v speak_v something_o for_o the_o exposition_n something_o by_o way_n of_o amplification_n of_o that_o which_o i_o apprehend_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n main_o point_v at_o in_o the_o word_n together_o with_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v so_o it_o be_v in_o our_o translation_n and_o those_o that_o carry_v it_o thus_o they_o make_v this_o to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v together_o with_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v point_n at_o this_o than_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v observe_v will_v be_v this_o that_o christ_n jesus_n have_v a_o body_n a_o natural_a body_n if_o it_o do_v not_o clear_o appear_v from_o this_o place_n yet_o it_o do_v from_o other_o for_o it_o be_v say_v he_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o likewise_o joh._n 1._o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n 1_o tim._n 3.16_o which_o will_v overthrow_v that_o which_o some_o familisticall_a spirit_n dare_v to_o assert_v in_o our_o time_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n never_o have_v any_o natural_a body_n allegorise_v the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o incarnation_n life_n and_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o second_o if_o it_o be_v thus_o expound_v as_o some_o learned_a man_n do_v expound_v the_o word_n the_o next_o observation_n will_v be_v this_o that_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o dead_a body_n revel_v 1.18_o i_o be_o he_o that_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a the_o true_a christ_n in_o his_o body_n be_v once_o dead_a his_o body_n be_v a_o crucify_a body_n he_o his_o own_o self_n say_v peter_n in_o his_o own_o body_n bear_v our_o sin_n upon_o the_o cross_n 1_o pet._n 2.24_o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o iniquity_n his_o body_n be_v bruise_v for_o our_o transgression_n isa_n 53._o three_o that_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v raise_v with_o my_o dead_a body_n they_o shall_v rise_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o this_o dead_a body_n speak_v of_o shall_v arise_v and_o this_o be_v that_o that_o be_v so_o frequent_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v witness_n appoint_v by_o god_n to_o testify_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a the_o devil_n know_v what_o a_o truth_n this_o be_v how_o much_o life_n glory_n sweetness_n and_o power_n there_o be_v in_o it_o therefore_o he_o employ_v his_o instrument_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n to_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o smother_v this_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n what_o lie_v do_v they_o not_o make_v what_o stone_n do_v they_o not_o turn_v what_o pain_n do_v they_o not_o take_v that_o they_o may_v possess_v the_o people_n with_o this_o persuasion_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v never_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n but_o that_o his_o disciple_n come_v and_o steal_v he_o away_o but_o brethren_n christ_n be_v rise_v and_o those_o that_o right_o understand_v this_o do_v find_v what_o sweetness_n and_o consolation_n come_v to_o their_o heart_n by_o believe_v this_o point_n there_o be_v so_o much_o in_o it_o that_o paul_n profess_v he_o desire_v to_o know_v nothing_o but_o christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v phil._n 3.10_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o peter_n 1._o pet._n 1.3_o say_v that_o god_n have_v beget_v we_o again_o to_o a_o lively_a hope_n through_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o hope_n of_o the_o disciple_n be_v almost_o dead_a and_o extinguish_v when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n lie_v in_o the_o grave_n but_o now_o christ_n be_v rise_v and_o have_v discover_v his_o power_n in_o vanquish_a his_n and_o all_o our_o enemy_n now_o we_o have_v a_o lively_a hope_n in_o we_o that_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o the_o believe_v of_o his_o resurrection_n we_o have_v a_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o our_o own_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a four_o with_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v christ_n as_o i_o hint_v before_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o suffer_v all_o thing_n as_o a_o public_a person●_n he_o die_v not_o for_o his_o own_o but_o for_o our_o sin_n q●i_fw-la non_fw-la habuit_fw-la propria_fw-la portavit_fw-la aliena_fw-la ful●_n he_o that_o have_v no_o sin_n of_o his_o own_o do_v beare●_n the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n he_o rise_v not_o so_o much_o for_o his_o own_o as_o for_o our_o justification_n he_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n rom._n 4._o the_o last_o and_o he_o rise_v for_o our_o justification_n so_o that_o when_o christ_n do_v rise_v we_o rise_v and_o he_o that_o believe_v this_o in_o the_o spirit_n see_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v rise_v with_o the_o lord_n there_o be_v be_v a_o twofold_a resurrection_n a_o resurrection_n by_o faith_n when_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o we_o be_v rise_v in_o christ_n our_o king_n head_n and_o leader_n and_o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n in_o our_o own_o person_n when_o we_o shall_v be_v raise_v in_o our_o own_o body_n christ_n do_v rise_v for_o the_o good_a and_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o all_o his_o people_n and_o christ_n keep_v possession_n of_o heaven_n after_o his_o resurrection_n for_o we_o in_o who_o person_n we_o be_v already_o rise_v and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o together_o with_o his_o dead_a body_n we_o shall_v arise_v five_o with_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v some_o interpret_v it_o thus_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n they_o shall_v rise_v that_o be_v there_o shall_v come_v at_o the_o last_o day_n a_o power_n from_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o raise_v up_o the_o saint_n to_o enjoy_v glory_n with_o the_o father_n but_o because_o i_o do_v not_o find_v these_o two_o word_n in_o the_o hebrew_n together_o nor_o with_o therefore_o be_v please_v to_o let_v i_o pass_v by_o these_o observation_n and_o to_o give_v you_o what_o i_o do_v apprehend_v to_o be_v the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o the_o text_n and_o to_o read_v the_o word_n thus_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n deliver_v by_o he_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o people_n assure_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o his_o body_n and_o though_o some_o do_v understand_v they_o concern_v the_o restauration_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o they_o unto_o christ_n yet_o i_o apprehend_v that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a spiritual_a meaning_n of_o god_n in_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v open_v to_o you_o this_o day_n the_o point_n than_o will_v be_v this_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o shall_v be_v raise_v be_v the_o dead_a body_n of_o christ_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
the_o perfection_n of_o justification_n maintain_v against_o the_o pharisee_v the_o purity_n of_o sanctification_n against_o the_o stainer_n of_o it_o the_o unquestionablenesse_n of_o a_o future_a glorification_n against_o the_o sadduce_n in_o several_a sermon_n together_o with_o a_o apologetical_a answer_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o new_a province_n of_o london_n in_o vindication_n of_o the_o author_n against_o their_o aspersion_n by_o john_n simpson_n a_o unworthy_a publisher_n of_o gospel-truth_n in_o london_n wisdom_n be_v justify_v of_o her_o child_n mat._n 11.19_o london_n print_v by_o m._n simmons_n for_o hanna_n allen_n and_o be_v to_o be_v sell_v at_o the_o crown_n in_o popes-head-alley_n 1648._o to_o the_o man_n true_o spiritual_a in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n whereas_o i_o intend_v to_o have_v present_v these_o plain_a and_o simple_a sermon_n to_o the_o patronage_n of_o some_o of_o my_o friend_n who_o be_v please_v to_o own_o and_o favour_v i_o in_o my_o suffering_n without_o any_o apology_n for_o myself_o or_o any_o vindication_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o have_v deliver_v i_o be_o now_o by_o weighty_a reason_n enforce_v to_o alter_v my_o resolution_n and_o my_o second_o thought_n do_v appear_v better_o unto_o i_o than_o my_o first_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o have_v be_v late_o asperse_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o two_o and_o fifty_o who_o profess_v themselves_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o man_n heterodox_n and_o unsound_a in_o my_o principle_n concern_v the_o the_o law_n and_o justification_n by_o free_a grace_n wherefore_o it_o seem_v probable_a unto_o i_o that_o if_o i_o shall_v bring_v my_o friend_n upon_o the_o stage_n to_o patronize_v i_o in_o a_o public_a way_n while_o i_o lie_v under_o the_o reproaching_n of_o so_o many_o i_o shall_v wrong_v those_o who_o i_o desire_v in_o thankfulness_n to_o respect_n and_o honour_n and_o if_o i_o shall_v venture_v these_o sermon_n into_o the_o world_n without_o any_o apology_n for_o myself_o i_o may_v prove_v more_o injurious_a to_o myself_o than_o these_o can_v be_v unto_o i_o beside_o this_o i_o do_v apprehend_v that_o some_o tender-hearted_a christian_n when_o they_o shall_v read_v the_o name_n of_o the_o abuse_a author_n now_o make_v infamous_a unto_o they_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o so_o many_o subscriber_n may_v either_o be_v afraid_a to_o read_v what_o i_o have_v print_v or_o if_o they_o shall_v read_v it_o a_o uncharitable_a prejudice_n may_v rob_v they_o of_o the_o fruit_n and_o harvest_n of_o their_o read_n for_o these_o and_o other_o reason_n i_o have_v usher_v in_o these_o sermon_n into_o the_o world_n with_o a_o short_a apologetical_a answer_n to_o their_o charge_n and_o have_v make_v choice_n of_o thou_o as_o a_o umpire_n and_o judge_n between_o my_o accuser_n and_o myself_o and_o true_o thou_o be_v the_o fit_a man_n that_o i_o can_v single_a out_o from_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n to_o do_v i_o this_o service_n of_o love_n whether_o i_o look_v upon_o myself_o or_o my_o antagonist_n first_o if_o i_o look_v upon_o my_o antagonist_n thou_o be_v not_o within_o their_o gunshot_n or_o censure_n and_o so_o thou_o can_v not_o not_o be_v damnify_v by_o i_o 1_o cor._n 2.15_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n yet_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_v by_o no_o man_n second_o if_o i_o look_v unto_o myself_o thou_o be_v the_o fit_a and_o only_a man_n for_o i_o for_o thou_o will_v not_o deal_v rigorous_o with_o i_o thou_o will_v juge_fw-fr i_o by_o the_o law_n of_o love_n liberty_n and_o clemency_n jam._n 2.12_o and_o when_o i_o serious_o consider_v what_o weakness_n frailty_n and_o infirmity_n have_v discover_v themselves_o in_o my_o flesh_n even_o in_o those_o thing_n whether_o in_o pray_v preach_v or_o write_v wherein_o i_o desire_v to_o be_v most_o spiritual_a i_o dare_v not_o think_v of_o any_o other_o judge_n thou_o will_v be_v more_o favourable_a than_o the_o synod_n at_o westminster_n unto_o my_o way_n and_o manner_n of_o preach_v and_o expression_n which_o i_o make_v use_v of_o five_o or_o six_o year_n since_o consider_v that_o i_o then_o have_v not_o be_v many_o month_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n thou_o will_v be_v more_o indulgent_a unto_o this_o book_n which_o now_o show_v itself_o to_o the_o world_n than_o the_o whole_a assembly_n of_o sion-colledge_n divine_v consider_v that_o at_o this_o time_n i_o have_v be_v but_o the_o time_n of_o a_o apprenticeship_n in_o the_o school_n of_o my_o saviour_n i_o need_v not_o make_v a_o apology_n for_o myself_o before_o thou_o to_o tell_v thou_o that_o these_o sermon_n be_v never_o intend_v for_o the_o press_n by_o the_o deliverer_n of_o they_o but_o bring_v thither_o by_o the_o skilful_a hand_n of_o one_o profess_v the_o art_n of_o shortwriting_n thou_o will_v willing_o of_o thyself_o pardon_v the_o method_n and_o immethodicalnesse_n of_o they_o and_o repetition_n in_o they_o delight_v thyself_o with_o the_o naked_a truth_n of_o christ_n contain_v in_o they_o i_o need_v not_o excuse_v the_o plainness_n of_o speech_n and_o want_n of_o worldly_a rhetoric_n which_o be_v in_o they_o in_o thy_o judgement_n plain_o preach_v 〈◊〉_d not_o to_o plead_v for_o a_o pardon_n but_o do_v deserve_v commendation_n the_o fantastical_a preach_n of_o some_o man_n of_o our_o time_n with_o 〈…〉_o metaphysical_a 〈…〉_o word_n excellency_n of_o speech_n and_o 〈◊〉_d can_v please_v thou_o because_o they_o be_v displ●●●●_n to_o christ_n and_o derogate_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o cross_n 1_o cor._n 1.17_o 1_o cor._n 2.1_o thou_o know_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v more_o useful_a for_o the_o spread_a of_o m●sterier_a of_o ungodliness_n covert_o and_o 〈…〉_o the_o publish_n of_o the_o soul_n save_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o a_o fit_a dress_n for_o the_o whore_n of_o error_n and_o falsehood_n than_o a_o clothing_n for_o the_o chaste_a virgin_n of_o truth_n that_o i_o may_v speak_v 〈◊〉_d heart_n to_o thou_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o will_v in_o all_o thing_n be_v so_o favourable_a unto_o i_o that_o i_o be_o rather_o willing_a to_o humble_v myself_o at_o thy_o foot_n then_o to_o justify_v myself_o before_o man_n i_o do_v therefore_o willing_o confess_v that_o i_o who_o be_o rather_o confident_a of_o thy_o ●avour_n then_o defirous_a to_o implore_v it_o do_v look_v upon_o myself_o as_o the_o vile_a of_o those_o who_o ever_o make_v any_o address_n unto_o thou_o when_o i_o consider_v my_o sinsulnesse_n before_o i_o be_v convince_v of_o sin_n my_o unrighteous_a righteousness_n before_o i_o come_v into_o the_o light_n and_o my_o praevarication_n and_o aversion_n from_o god_n since_o i_o receive_v his_o light_n augustine_n compose_v a_o small_a book_n which_o he_o call_v his_o confession_n in_o which_o he_o do_v spread_v forth_o his_o folly_n unto_o the_o world_n before_o his_o conversion_n but_o shall_v i_o set_v down_o all_o the_o folly_n vanity_n and_o wickedness_n of_o my_o youth_n a_o great_a volume_n will_v not_o hold_v they_o and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o write_v large_a volume_n of_o they_o then_o to_o bring_v they_o within_o the_o narrow_a limit_n and_o border_n of_o a_o epistle_n that_o i_o may_v therefore_o pass_v these_o by_o as_o god_n have_v pass_v they_o by_o in_o his_o grace_n never_o to_o call_v they_o to_o his_o remembrance_n against_o meinie_z more_fw-mi i_o do_v now_o acknowledge_v that_o by_o the_o reason_n of_o variety_n of_o inward_a temptation_n since_o i_o have_v look_v towards_o religion_n i_o have_v be_v in_o my_o own_o apprehension_n a_o mere_a proteus_n in_o religion_n i_o have_v be_v zealous_a for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n that_o i_o may_v be_v make_v a_o righteous_a man_n be_v ignorant_a of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n for_o righteousness_n for_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v then_o as_o loathsome_a a_o sinner_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n as_o i_o be_v a_o righteous_a man_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n i_o have_v sudden_o leap_v from_o pharisaisme_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o carnal_a way_n and_o have_v then_o be_v ready_a to_o think_v that_o i_o can_v never_o be_v a_o true_a gospel-professour_n unless_o i_o do_v take_v some_o liberty_n beyond_o the_o allowance_n which_o i_o now_o apprehend_v the_o gospel_n afford_v i_o have_v be_v so_o ignorant_o inquisitive_a after_o the_o knowledge_n of_o ordinance_n that_o i_o have_v doubt_v whether_o ever_o i_o shall_v be_v save_v die_v ignorant_a of_o the_o ordinonce_n and_o church-government_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o look_v for_o light_n and_o find_v darkness_n and_o confusion_n in_o these_o thing_n i_o have_v be_v afterward_o as_o spiritual_o mad_a and_o foolish_a in_o the_o undervalue_v of_o they_o there_o be_v scarce_o a_o error_n to_o be_v think_v of_o but_o by_o the_o
nonege_v ullo_fw-la doctore_fw-la hac_fw-la in_o re_fw-la tantum_fw-la consul_n tuum_fw-la proprium_fw-la cor_fw-la hoc_fw-la satis_fw-la abunde_fw-la docebit_fw-la te_fw-la ita_fw-la diligendum_fw-la esse_fw-la tuum_fw-la proximum_fw-la ut_fw-la teipsum_fw-la thou_o have_v the_o fair_a and_o best_a book_n of_o all_o law_n in_o thy_o own_o heart_n thou_o need_v no_o other_o teacher_n in_o this_o matter_n only_o take_v counsel_n of_o thy_o own_o heart_n that_o will_v sufficient_o teach_v thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n asthy_a self_n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n upon_o the_o second_o chapter_n quod_fw-la spectaculum_fw-la valde_fw-la jucundum_fw-la est_fw-la proponit_fw-la &_o producit_fw-la legem_fw-la velut_fw-la furem_fw-la aut_fw-la latronem_fw-la aliquem_fw-la jam_fw-la damnatum_fw-la &_o adjudicatum_fw-la morti_fw-la pingit_fw-la enim_fw-la per_fw-la prosopopeiam_fw-la legem_fw-la captivam_fw-la teneri_fw-la cvi_fw-la jam_fw-la manus_fw-la &_o pedes_fw-la juncti_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnisque_fw-la potestas_fw-la adempta_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la amplius_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la exercere_fw-la tyrannidem_fw-la svam_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la accusare_fw-la et_fw-la condemnare_fw-la et_fw-la hac_fw-la jucundissimâ_fw-la dissimâ_fw-la picturâ_fw-la reddit_fw-la eam_fw-la contemptibilem_fw-la in_o conscientîa_fw-la ut_fw-la credens_fw-fr in_o christum_fw-la jam_fw-la ausit_fw-la legi_fw-la sanctâ_fw-la quadam_fw-la superbià_fw-la insultare_fw-la all_o hunc_fw-la modum_fw-la ego_fw-la sum_fw-la peccator_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la potes_fw-la contra_fw-la i_o lex_fw-la facito_fw-la tantum_fw-la abest_fw-la ut_fw-la credenti_fw-la sit_fw-la lex_fw-la nunc_fw-la formidabilis_fw-la it_o be_v a_o pleasant_a sight_n to_o behold_v how_o he_o bring_v forth_o the_o law_n as_o a_o thief_n or_o a_o robber_n adjudge_v to_o death_n for_o he_o paint_v forth_o the_o law_n by_o a_o prosopopeia_fw-la as_o a_o captive_n who_o hand_n and_o foot_n be_v bind_v and_o all_o its_o power_n take_v away_o so_o that_o it_o can_v exercise_v its_o tyranny_n any_o more_o over_o we_o that_o be_v it_o can_v accuse_v and_o condemn_v and_o by_o this_o pleasant_a picture_n he_o make_v it_o contemptible_a in_o the_o conscience_n so_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n do_v now_o dare_v to_o insult_v over_o the_o law_n by_o a_o holy_a kind_n of_o pride_n after_o this_o manner_n i_o be_o a_o sinner_n if_o law_n thou_o can_v do_v any_o thing_n against_o i_o do_v it_o so_o far_o be_v the_o formidability_n of_o the_o law_n from_o a_o believer_n the_o like_a speech_n be_v that_o of_o zanchius_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n constat_fw-la legem_fw-la solis_fw-la judaeis_n datam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la gentibus_fw-la it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o law_n be_v give_v only_o to_o the_o jew_n and_o not_o to_o the_o gentile_n a_o parallel_a place_n to_o this_o we_o have_v in_o musculus_fw-la legem_fw-la mosaicam_fw-la literis_fw-la comprehensam_fw-la non_fw-la inter_fw-la christianos_n duntaxaat_fw-mi qui_fw-la ex_fw-la israele_n christum_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la ac_fw-la salvatorem_fw-la mundi_fw-la credendo_fw-la receperunt_fw-la sed_fw-la et_fw-la inter_fw-la judaeos_fw-la admodum_fw-la de_fw-la lege_fw-la gloriantes_fw-la reipsà_fw-la abrogatam_fw-la esse_fw-la constat_fw-la it_o be_v evident_a say_v he_o that_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n write_v with_o letter_n be_v abbrogated_a not_o among_o the_o christian_n only_o who_o by_o faith_n have_v receive_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n but_o among_o the_o jew_n who_o glory_n in_o the_o law_n i_o can_v likewise_o produce_v specche_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n which_o may_v sound_v harsh_a to_o some_o ear_n and_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v very_o dark_a to_o some_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v set_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n from_o which_o they_o receive_v light_n that_o they_o may_v be_v more_o easy_o and_o plain_o understand_v by_o we_o but_o leave_v this_o grant_v i_o liberty_n to_o prove_v by_o spiritual_a reason_n and_o scripture_n that_o in_o some_o case_n it_o may_v be_v lawful_a for_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o make_v use_n of_o such_o a_o expression_n as_o this_o be_v away_o with_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n reas_n 1._o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v faedus_fw-la legale_fw-la a_o legal_a covenant_n so_o i_o speak_v unto_o believe_v christian_n may_v say_v away_o with_o it_o put_v not_o yourselves_o under_o the_o jewish_a covenant_n the_o apostle_n will_v justify_v this_o expression_n by_o his_o own_o gal._n 4.30_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cast_v out_o say_v he_o the_o bond_n woman_n will_v you_o know_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o bondwoman_n he_o himself_o will_v inform_v you_o and_o tell_v you_o that_o it_o be_v the_o covenant_n of_o sinai_n vers_fw-la 24._o which_o expression_n be_v most_o harsh_a to_o compare_v the_o law_n or_o covenant_n of_o sinai_n to_o a_o bondwoman_n and_o to_o command_v we_o to_o cast_v she_o out_o or_o else_o to_o say_v away_o with_o the_o law_n reas_n 2._o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o law_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v heb._n 8._o so_o i_o may_v say_v away_o with_o the_o old_a covenant_n that_o god_n may_v glorify_v himself_o by_o reveal_v the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n unto_o you_o will_v not_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n likewise_o hold_v i_o guiltless_a in_o this_o expression_n if_o we_o consider_v what_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o that_o chapter_n where_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o it_o wax_v old_a &_o be_v ready_a to_o vanish_v away_o from_o which_o word_n mr._n dickson_n do_v draw_v this_o conclusion_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n the_o legal_a or_o levitical_a covenant_n be_v near_o to_o death_n and_o vanish_v away_o and_o by_o consequent_a after_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n under_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v become_v new_a it_o be_v expire_v temporibus_fw-la jeremiae_n prophetae_fw-la prope_fw-la erat_fw-la ut_fw-la moreretur_fw-la &_o evanesceret_fw-la faedus_fw-la legale_fw-la seu_fw-la leviticum_fw-la et_fw-la per_fw-la consequens_fw-la post_fw-la adventum_fw-la christi_fw-la sub_fw-la quo_fw-la nova_fw-la facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la omne_fw-la expiravit_fw-la if_o i_o thus_o speak_v of_o the_o law_n be_v there_o any_o great_a absurdity_n to_o say_v away_o with_o it_o than_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v vanish_v away_o reas_n 3._o when_o justification_n be_v preach_v and_o a_o experience_a servant_n of_o christ_n know_v that_o man_n natural_o seek_v righteousness_n by_o the_o law_n and_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o persuade_v their_o hearer_n not_o to_o look_v to_o that_o law_n for_o justification_n but_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n paul_n speak_v of_o saint_n say_v that_o they_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o law_n by_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n rom._n 7.4_o may_v not_o a_o man_n bid_v people_n to_o put_v away_o the_o law_n in_o point_n of_o justification_n and_o salvation_n as_o well_o as_o to_o inform_v they_o that_o they_o must_v be_v dead_a unto_o it_o that_o they_o may_v live_v unto_o christ_n luther_n have_v many_o expression_n high_o than_o i_o in_o this_o point_n and_o yet_o you_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o heretic_n will_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n teach_v we_o to_o be_v as_o favourable_a to_o the_o live_n as_o dead_a servant_n of_o christ_n in_o our_o censure_n will_v not_o grace_n teach_v we_o to_o be_v as_o love_v to_o those_o who_o be_v present_a with_o we_o as_o to_o those_o who_o be_v absent_a from_o we_o i_o shall_v for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o unpreingage_v reader_n set_v down_o a_o few_o of_o his_o speech_n paulus_n est_fw-la hic_fw-la haereticus_fw-la omnium_fw-la haereticissimus_fw-la estque_fw-la haeresis_fw-la ejus_fw-la inaudita_fw-la quia_fw-la dicit_fw-la mortuum_fw-la legi_fw-la vivere_fw-la deo_fw-la psuedo-apostoli_a docebant_fw-la nisi_fw-la vixeris_fw-la legi_fw-la non_fw-la vixeris_fw-la deo_fw-la paul_n be_v here_o the_o most_o heretical_a of_o all_o heretic_n his_o heresy_n be_v un-heard_a of_o heresy_n because_o he_o say_v that_o he_o who_o be_v dead_a to_o the_o law_n do_v live_v to_o god_n the_o false_a apostle_n teach_v unless_o you_o live_v to_o the_o law_n you_o can_v live_v to_o god_n and_o afterward_o if_o thou_o will_v live_v to_o god_n it_o behoove_v thou_o to_o die_v altogether_o to_o the_o law_n reason_n and_o humane_a wisdom_n can_v receive_v this_o and_o therefore_o it_o always_o teach_v the_o contrary_a unto_o it_o si_fw-mi vis_fw-la vivere_fw-la deo_fw-la oportet_fw-la te_fw-la omnino_fw-la mori_fw-la legi_fw-la hanc_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la ratio_fw-la et_fw-la sapientia_fw-la humana_fw-la non_fw-la capit_fw-la ideo_fw-la perpetuo_fw-la contrarium_fw-la docet_fw-la again_o he_o have_v these_o word_n when_o sophister_n do_v apprehend_v that_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v only_o abrogate_a do_v thou_o believe_v that_o paul_n and_o every_o christian_a be_v abrogate_a to_o
surety_n who_o have_v pay_v our_o debt_n have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o so_o that_o by_o faith_n though_o we_o be_v assure_v of_o god_n love_n in_o the_o first_o place_n yet_o we_o be_v not_o only_o assure_v but_o likewise_o christ_n be_v apply_v unto_o we_o we_o be_v unite_v unto_o he_o and_o do_v enjoy_v all_o thing_n in_o he_o and_o receive_v all_o good_a thing_n from_o he_o seven_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o by_o the_o misunderstanding_n of_o it_o we_o may_v not_o detract_v from_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o from_o that_o everlasting_a righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v jehovah_n our_o righteousness_n jer._n 23.6_o abraham_n when_o he_o believe_v and_o his_o faith_n be_v count_v unto_o he_o for_o righteousness_n have_v a_o vision_n of_o god_n and_o his_o word_n do_v inward_o appear_v unto_o he_o gen._n 15.1_o and_o he_o behold_v god_n as_o his_o shield_n and_o exceed_v great_a reward_n and_o supreme_a righteousness_n so_o a_o believe_a man_n do_v so_o look_v upon_o faith_n as_o his_o righteousness_n that_o he_o do_v then_o behold_v god_n in_o christ_n as_o his_o supreme_a righteousness_n for_o his_o justification_n isa_n 45.25.1_o cor_n 1.30_o as_o adam_n when_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n do_v so_o look_v upon_o his_o own_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n that_o he_o do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n behold_v god_n as_o his_o chief_a good_a and_o righteousness_n so_o a_o believe_a man_n do_v so_o look_v upon_o faith_n as_o his_o righteousness_n by_o which_o he_o be_v save_v that_o he_o do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n behold_v god_n in_o christ_n as_o his_o chief_a righteousness_n though_o he_o acknowledge_v faith_n his_o righteousness_n in_o its_o place_n yet_o he_o account_v it_o as_o nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o that_o righteousness_n which_o he_o have_v in_o god_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o say_v with_o the_o psalmist_n psal_n 71.16_o i_o will_v go_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n i_o will_v make_v mention_n of_o thy_o righteousness_n even_o of_o thy_o only_a he_o do_v not_o by_o this_o undervalue_n the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n he_o prize_v it_o above_o the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o which_o carnal_a man_n do_v value_n at_o so_o high_a a_o rate_n but_o according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o he_o who_o gift_n faith_n be_v he_o set_v the_o gist_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o esteem_v below_o he_o who_o be_v the_o giver_n of_o it_o he_o see_v salvation_n to_o be_v more_o from_o the_o giver_n of_o faith_n than_o faith_n itself_o he_o look_v upon_o faith_n not_o as_o the_o cause_n of_o justifi_a grace_n but_o look_v upon_o justifi_a grace_n through_o christ_n as_o the_o cause_n of_o that_o faith_n by_o which_o he_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v and_o do_v know_v that_o his_o juificaticaon_n be_v perfect_v by_o grace_n and_o in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n before_o it_o be_v complete_v and_o effect_v in_o he_o by_o faith_n he_o well_o understand_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o soul_n be_v betroth_v by_o faith_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o he_o be_v betroth_v to_o god_n for_o ever_o in_o righteousness_n and_o in_o love_a kindness_n and_o in_o mercy_n hosea_n 2.19_o he_o be_v enlighten_v to_o see_v a_o reconciliation_n by_o grace_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n before_o god_n before_o his_o reconciliation_n by_o faith_n in_o his_o spirit_n he_o consider_v that_o when_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n he_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n rom_n 5.10_o which_o reconciliation_n be_v before_o his_o faith_n and_o yet_o deny_v not_o reconciliation_n by_o faith_n he_o know_v that_o what_o he_o believe_v concern_v god_n grace_n and_o his_o redemption_n and_o justification_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_a before_o he_o believe_v it_o and_o yet_o he_o believe_v that_o faith_n be_v his_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n he_o confound_v not_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n by_o who_o he_o be_v justify_v but_o give_v unto_o god_n &_o christ_n what_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o god_n &_o christ_n for_o justification_n &_o likewise_o attribute_v to_o faith_n what_o be_v due_a to_o faith_n not_o look_v up_o on_o faith_n as_o his_o righteousness_n without_o the_o object_n of_o it_o but_o always_o look_v upon_o faith_n for_o his_o justification_n as_o it_o have_v reference_n &_o relation_n to_o its_o object_n which_o be_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v be_v ask_v whether_o he_o be_v more_o righteous_a by_o grace_n and_o christ_n or_o by_o faith_n he_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o be_v rather_o justify_v by_o grace_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n ro._n 5.19_o see_v more_o righteousness_n for_o he_o in_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n then_o in_o faith_n by_o which_o he_o behold_v the_o object_n and_o yet_o still_o maintain_v that_o faith_n be_v his_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n eight_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n not_o for_o the_o purity_n and_o holiness_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o the_o sanctifi_a spirit_n for_o then_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n we_o shall_v take_v in_o love_n and_o other_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o the_o apostle_n do_v shut_v out_o as_o have_v no_o influence_n upon_o we_o for_o our_o justification_n which_o the_o apohle_n do_v prove_v in_o the_o follow_a word_n where_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v save_v not_o of_o work_n because_o we_o be_v god_n workmanship_n create_v to_o good_a work_n good_a work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o new_a creation_n and_o justification_n but_o the_o consequent_n of_o our_o new_a creation_n through_o faith_n so_o that_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o we_o be_v justify_v before_o sanctification_n be_v wrought_v in_o we_o or_o good_a work_n do_v by_o we_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o they_o by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o faith_n as_o a_o holy_a gift_n or_o quality_n do_v not_o save_v we_o we_o be_v save_v therefore_o by_o faith_n as_o that_o righteousness_n by_o which_o we_o do_v at_o the_o first_o lie_v hold_v upon_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o son_n for_o justification_n by_o which_o we_o be_v unite_v unto_o god_n and_o be_v make_v one_o with_o he_o joh._n 17.21_o be_v purify_v from_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o our_o heart_n act._n 15.9_o and_o have_v peace_n with_o he_o through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n rom._n 5.1_o who_o we_o see_v &_o embrace_v by_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n setteh_o forth_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n heb._n 12.13_o and_o he_o that_o thus_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v nine_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n because_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o only_o enable_v to_o believe_v the_o general_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n concern_v his_o grace_n to_o those_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o because_o through_o faith_n we_o be_v enable_v to_o give_v credit_n to_o god_n truth_n and_o to_o rest_v upon_o it_o in_o reference_n and_o relation_n to_o ourselves_o thus_o abraham_n who_o for_o the_o excellency_n and_o examplarinesse_n of_o his_o faith_n be_v worthy_o style_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v believe_v what_o god_n do_v speak_v unto_o he_o not_o only_o as_o a_o truth_n which_o may_v be_v beneficial_a unto_o other_o but_o he_o look_v upon_o christ_n in_o reference_n to_o himself_o gen_n 15._o and_o see_v his_o day_n and_o see_v of_o it_o be_v glad_a he_o look_v upon_o god_n not_o only_o as_o a_o shield_n and_o great_a reward_n but_o his_o shield_n and_o great_a reward_n by_o true_a faith_n we_o receive_v chr_v and_o his_o benefit_n for_o ourselves_o paul_n do_v inform_v we_o that_o his_o life_n in_o the_o flesh_n be_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o love_v he_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o he_o faith_n sweetness_n do_v lie_v in_o this_o that_o by_o it_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o saviour_n and_o righteousness_n but_o our_o saviour_n and_o righteousness_n therefore_o luther_n affirm_v that_o the_o sweetness_n of_o christianity_n lay_v in_o pronoun_n when_o a_o man_n can_v say_v my_o lord_n and_o my_o god_n and_o my_o bless_a jesus_n this_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v which_o will_v be_v manifest_a unto_o we_o if_o we_o consider_v their_o intention_n when_o they_o exhort_v man_n to_o believe_v they_o do_v not_o intend_v that_o their_o hearer_n shall_v believe_v in_o general_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o
believe_v from_o a_o dunghill_n to_o a_o throne_n from_o everlasting_a wrath_n to_o never-ending_a glory_n and_o immortality_n i_o may_v speak_v more_o full_o of_o this_o concern_v which_o no_o man_n can_v speak_v sufficient_o but_o my_o intention_n be_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o this_o but_o rather_o of_o that_o which_o be_v principal_o intend_v in_o the_o word_n to_o show_v you_o the_o sinless_a condition_n of_o the_o man_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o leave_v this_o point_n that_o i_o may_v brief_o open_v the_o word_n which_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n that_o so_o i_o may_v draw_v the_o marrow_n and_o substance_n of_o they_o into_o a_o short_a conclusion_n the_o illustration_n confirmation_n and_o amplification_n of_o which_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o my_o ensue_a discourse_n i_o do_v find_v that_o the_o godly-learned_n do_v not_o agree_v in_o their_o exposition_n of_o these_o word_n i_o shall_v therefore_o acquaint_v you_o with_o their_o several_a exposition_n and_o shall_v enlarge_v my_o thought_n in_o the_o amplify_a of_o that_o which_o i_o do_v apprehend_v in_o truth_n to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o these_o word_n first_o some_o say_v that_o he_o can_v commit_v sin_n that_o be_v non_fw-la potest_fw-la operam_fw-la dare_v peceate_n he_o can_v make_v sin_n his_o work_n trade_n or_o employment_n and_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n the_o road_n of_o prophanesse_n and_o wilful_a sin_v have_v never_o be_v the_o way_n in_o the_o which_o the_o saint_n have_v walk_v their_o path_n be_v the_o path_n of_o purity_n and_o uprightness_n but_o this_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o he_o can_v commit_v sin_n but_o he_o can_v sin_v second_o other_o say_v that_o he_o can_v commit_v sin_n as_o a_o servant_n of_o sin_n as_o though_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v a_o sufficient_a exposition_n of_o these_o joh._n 8.34_o whosoever_o commit_v sin_n be_v a_o servant_n of_o sin_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o do_v not_o do_v sin_n as_o his_o work_n as_o a_o servant_n do_v work_v by_o the_o appointment_n and_o commandment_n of_o his_o master_n i_o question_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n where_o christ_n be_v lord_n and_o master_n in_o the_o soul_n he_o take_v our_o soul_n in_o unto_o himself_o by_o conquest_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v those_o who_o command_v we_o before_o his_o conquest_n to_o rule_v over_o we_o now_o he_o have_v subdue_v they_o as_o a_o conquer_a king_n will_v not_o suffer_v conquer_v rebel_n to_o command_v his_o subject_n but_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o seem_v to_o drive_v only_o at_o this_o because_o as_o it_o have_v be_v observe_v he_o say_v afterward_o that_o he_o can_v sin_v three_o some_o say_v that_o he_o can_v sin_v because_o he_o can_v commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n and_o these_o go_v as_o far_o as_o the_o end_n of_o the_o epistle_n for_o a_o exposition_n chap._n 5.17.18_o all_o iniquity_n be_v sin_n and_o there_o be_v a_o sin_n not_o unto_o death_n we_o know_v that_o whosoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o but_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n keep_v himself_o and_o the_o wicked_a one_o touch_v he_o not_o thus_o they_o affirm_v that_o he_o fin_v not_o because_o he_o sin_v not_o unto_o death_n this_o which_o they_o say_v be_v likewise_o a_o undeniable_a truth_n in_o itself_o but_o not_o all_o that_o the_o apostle_n intend_v in_o these_o word_n which_o will_v evident_o appear_v if_o we_o look_v serious_o upon_o the_o precedent_a word_n where_o the_o apostle_n do_v set_v down_o the_o antithesis_fw-la and_o opposition_n between_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n and_o the_o natural_a man_n and_o do_v make_v this_o the_o characteristical_a difference_n between_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n and_o the_o man_n of_o the_o devil_n vers_fw-la 6_o 7_o 8._o that_o the_o one_o do_v sin_n and_o the_o other_o do_v not_o sin_n every_o one_o that_o abide_v in_o he_o sin_v not_o &_o he_o that_o sin_v have_v not_o know_v he_o or_o see_v he_o and_o as_o no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o difference_n in_o this_o place_n between_o the_o carnal_a and_o spiritual_a man_n be_v this_o that_o the_o one_o do_v not_o commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n and_o the_o other_o do_v for_o then_o this_o absurdity_n will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o every_o carnal_a man_n do_v commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o every_o carnal_a man_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o sin_v that_o be_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o we_o take_v their_o exposition_n so_o no_o man_n may_v affirm_v that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o these_o word_n which_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o way_n of_o opposition_n to_o the_o precedent_n that_o he_o that_o commit_v not_o sin_n do_v not_o commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n for_o then_o this_o absurdity_n will_v follow_v that_o every_o man_n who_o commit_v not_o the_o unpardonable_a sin_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o subsequent_a word_n where_o he_o say_v vers_fw-la 10._o that_o in_o this_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v manifest_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o one_o do_v not_o commit_v sin_n and_o the_o other_o do_v commit_v sin_n take_v the_o word_n according_a to_o their_o exposition_n and_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o in_o this_o the_o saint_n and_o carnal_a man_n be_v distinguish_v that_o the_o saint_n do_v not_o commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n and_o that_o all_o carnal_a man_n do_v commit_v the_o unpardonable_a sin_n of_o the_o absurdity_n of_o which_o tenet_n contrariety_n to_o scripture_n and_o daily_a experience_n i_o leave_v the_o spiritual_a man_n a_o judge_n 4._o other_o say_v that_o he_o sin_v not_o that_o be_v in_o his_o justify_v state_n and_o condition_n he_o sin_v not_o because_o he_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n and_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n likewise_o full_a of_o comfort_n and_o sweetness_n that_o the_o believer_n or_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n do_v not_o sin_n in_o reference_n to_o justification_n their_o meaning_n be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n from_o which_o a_o believer_n be_v not_o justify_v but_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v only_o of_o this_o for_o he_o speak_v of_o his_o work_n of_o righteousness_n by_o love_n in_o this_o place_n and_o through_o the_o whole_a epistle_n as_o well_o as_o of_o believe_v and_o of_o such_o work_n which_o saint_n be_v to_o do_v by_o which_o they_o may_v be_v justify_v before_o man_n as_o these_o man_n do_v grant_v themselves_o and_o therefore_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v so_o strict_o in_o reference_n to_o our_o justification_n through_o faith_n only_o as_o these_o word_n do_v declare_v it_o sufficient_o every_o one_o that_o work_v not_o righteousness_n be_v not_o of_o god_n and_o he_o that_o love_v not_o his_o brother_n vers_fw-la 10._o do_v he_o pray_v for_o such_o who_o he_o think_v be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v or_o for_o all_o true_a saint_n who_o he_o do_v know_v do_v love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o corruption_n reply_n if_o they_o be_v consider_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v so_o they_o be_v not_o evil_a but_o as_o they_o be_v do_v by_o we_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o call_v they_o menstruous_a rag_n even_o our_o very_a righteousness_n not_o our_o old_a man_n only_o isa_n 64.6_o from_o the_o better_a part_n and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n do_v call_v we_o saint_n or_o holy_a man_n ephes_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o we_o be_v spiritual_o regenerate_v or_o make_v new_a creature_n though_o much_o of_o the_o flesh_n do_v remain_v in_o the_o best_a of_o we_o and_o this_o i_o do_v apprehend_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o god_n in_o this_o place_n so_o cajetan_n upon_o the_o word_n he_o do_v say_v he_o understand_v it_o formal_o that_o be_v in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n for_o our_o new_a creation_n from_o god_n do_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o sin_n intelligit_fw-la formaliter_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la quatenus_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la natus_fw-la nativitas_fw-la enim_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la non_fw-la that_fw-mi peccare_fw-la so_o likewise_o that_o faithful_a martyr_n tyndall_n speak_v in_o the_o open_n of_o these_o word_n god_n and_o the_o devil_n be_v two_o contrary_a father_n two_o contrary_a fountain_n two_o contrary_a cause_n the_o one_o of_o all_o goodness_n the_o other_o of_o all_o evil_a and_o they_o that_o do_v evil_a be_v bear_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o be_v first_o evil_n by_o that_o birth_n before_o they_o
for_o the_o saint_n they_o be_v to_o awake_v and_o sing_v five_o we_o have_v the_o saint_n set_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o their_o low_a condition_n before_o this_o resurrection_n so_o they_o be_v call_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o dust_n awake_v and_o sing_v you_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o dust_n six_o we_o have_v a_o further_a proof_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o glorious_a resurrection_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o great_a joy_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o these_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o dust_n when_o they_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o power_n of_o heaven_n from_o death_n to_o immortal_a life_n and_o that_o be_v from_o the_o heavenly_a dew_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o shall_v be_v as_o dew_v from_o the_o father_n upon_o they_o to_o quicken_v they_o to_o life_n after_o death_n for_o as_o we_o see_v the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n fall_v upon_o the_o herb_n after_o they_o be_v wither_v and_o almost_o dead_a by_o the_o parch_a heat_n of_o the_o sun_n they_o again_o wax_v green_a and_o flourish_v so_o when_o we_o have_v lie_v wither_v in_o the_o grave_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n upon_o we_o be_v shall_v come_v down_o in_o his_o power_n and_o put_v a_o new_a life_n into_o we_o and_o after_o death_n we_o shall_v be_v raise_v to_o a_o life_n of_o glory_n for_o thy_o dew_n be_v as_o the_o dew_n of_o herb_n then_o in_o the_o next_o place_n he_o prove_v it_o from_o the_o willingness_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o be_v disburden_v of_o her_o charge_n when_o god_n call_v for_o it_o the_o earth_n shall_v present_o give_v up_o the_o carcase_n that_o she_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o earth_n be_v god_n chest_n in_o which_o he_o lock_v up_o the_o dust_n of_o his_o saint_n for_o a_o short_a time_n but_o when_o god_n call_v for_o this_o treasure_n again_o the_o earth_n shall_v present_o be_v willing_a to_o yield_v what_o be_v entrust_v to_o her_o bowel_n and_o the_o earth_n shall_v cast_v up_o her_o dead_a these_o be_v the_o part_n of_o this_o text_n which_o be_v as_o clear_v a_o promise_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a as_o we_o find_v in_o all_o the_o old-testament_n though_o other_o do_v otherwise_o expound_v it_o concern_v the_o jew_n deliverance_n with_o who_o i_o have_v not_o time_n now_o to_o contend_v i_o do_v make_v choice_n of_o this_o text_n for_o these_o reason_n first_o because_o i_o do_v consider_v that_o though_o there_o be_v many_o that_o make_v profession_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o a_o resurrection_n yet_o there_o be_v few_o that_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o that_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n dare_v man_n live_v in_o all_o wickedness_n ungodliness_n and_o impiety_n dare_v they_o venture_v to_o carry_v the_o load_n of_o their_o sin_n with_o they_o to_o the_o grave_n when_o they_o come_v to_o lie_v on_o their_o deathbed_n and_o never_o be_v trouble_v for_o their_o sin_n never_o be_v trouble_v for_o their_o good_n unjust_o get_v be_v it_o possible_a that_o man_n can_v livethus_n and_o die_v in_o this_o sottish_a and_o senseless_a condition_n do_v they_o indeed_o and_o in_o truth_n believe_v there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n second_o because_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o perverse_a people_n in_o the_o city_n who_o do_v with_o boldness_n oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n true_o we_o need_v not_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n we_o need_v not_o travel_v to_o the_o holy_a land_n to_o find_v out_o a_o generation_n of_o sadducee_n the_o lord_n know_v my_o heart_n have_v bleed_v within_o i_o when_o i_o have_v consider_v the_o multitude_n of_o sadducee_n that_o be_v here_o in_o london_n sadducee_n of_o all_o sort_n episcopal_a sadducee_n presbyterian_a sadducee_n separate_v sadducee_n dip_v sadducee_n seek_v sadducee_n yet_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o notion_n that_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a fancy_n of_o man_n a_o notion_n of_o some_o idle_a brain_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n i_o believe_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o be_v so_o general_o know_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o think_v that_o i_o speak_v a_o untruth_n in_o this_o place_n at_o this_o present_a for_o impiety_n have_v get_v such_o a_o brazen_a face_n that_o it_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o light_n and_o though_o man_n have_v profess_v christ_n and_o religion_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n so_o long_o yet_o how_o many_o be_v there_o now_o that_o deny_v that_o ever_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n or_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n at_o the_o great_a day_n therefore_o i_o think_v i_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n if_o i_o will_v deal_v upright_o in_o employ_v that_o small_a talon_n god_n have_v give_v i_o to_o manifest_v my_o dislike_n of_o these_o man_n and_o to_o witness_v against_o they_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n three_o consider_v the_o subtle_a practice_n and_o indefatigable_a labour_n of_o these_o people_n who_o under_o a_o vizard_n of_o religion_n deceive_v poor_a weak_a christian_n for_o their_o sake_n and_o for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o the_o weak_a i_o do_v resolve_v with_o myself_o to_o speak_v something_o concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o see_v god_n have_v press_v i_o to_o the_o handle_n of_o this_o point_n know_v it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o good_a of_o diverse_a poor_a weak_a christian_n i_o hope_v it_o will_v not_o be_v displease_v to_o any_o who_o be_v true_o spiritual_a and_o know_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o a_o true_a and_o spiritual_a way_n and_o wait_v upon_o he_o for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n i_o shall_v therefore_o without_o any_o further_a preface_n address_v myself_o to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text._n thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v where_o we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o though_o in_o this_o place_n here_o be_v nothing_o speak_v concern_v the_o resurrection_n of_o wicked_a man_n but_o only_o of_o the_o dead_a man_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n yet_o in_o other_o place_n it_o be_v sufficient_o hold_v forth_o those_o that_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n be_v in_o a_o special_a manner_n call_v the_o dead_a man_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n bless_a be_v the_o dead_a that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o these_o be_v call_v in_o this_o respect_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d luc._n 20.36_o the_o son_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o these_o be_v they_o only_o who_o be_v heir_n of_o glory_n and_o the_o resurrection_n it_o be_v better_o for_o other_o that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o resurrection_n it_o be_v better_o for_o they_o that_o the_o mountain_n may_v cover_v they_o and_o that_o they_o may_v sleep_v in_o verlasting_a oblivion_n then_o to_o be_v bring_v forth_o before_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d chrys_n the_o dreadful_a tribunal_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o give_v account_n for_o all_o their_o thought_n word_n and_o action_n yet_o you_o shall_v see_v other_o place_n clear_o hold_v forth_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o ungodly_a and_o wicked_a as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o saint_n though_o here_o the_o prophet_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o those_o that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n i_o will_v give_v you_o but_o one_o place_n and_o that_o be_v in_o joh._n 5.28_o 29._o it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o our_o saviour_n marvel_v not_o at_o this_o say_v he_o for_o the_o hour_n be_v come_v in_o the_o which_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o grave_n shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o shall_v come_v forth_o those_o that_o have_v do_v good_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o they_o that_o have_v do_v evil_a unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o damnation_n jo._n 5.29_o so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a resurrection_n of_o life_n and_o of_o damnation_n though_o the_o prophet_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o former_a in_o this_o place_n second_o thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v that_o be_v all_o those_o saint_n who_o die_v and_o who_o body_n be_v lay_v in_o the_o dust_n all_o those_o shall_v rise_v god_n have_v not_o appoint_v that_o all_o the_o saint_n shall_v die_v this_o the_o apostle_n show_v we_o shall_v not_o all_o die_v but_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v change_v 2_o cor._n 15.51_o and_o speak_v of_o those_o that_o shall_v live_v when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v appear_v from_o heaven_n he_o say_v than_o we_o which_o be_v alive_a and_o remain_v shall_v be_v catch_v up_o together_o with_o they_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o we_o shall_v ever_o be_v with_o the_o lord_n 2_o thess_n 4.17_o so_o that_o when_o he_o say_v thy_o dead_a
from_o whence_o i_o frame_v my_o argument_n thus_o that_o covenant_n which_o require_v work_n and_o not_o faith_n for_o justification_n be_v not_o a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n but_o the_o law_n require_v work_n and_o not_o faith_n for_o justification_n and_o therefore_o the_o law_n be_v not_o a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n but_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v mistake_v in_o what_o i_o have_v here_o speak_v i_o shall_v lay_v down_o such_o caution_n which_o be_v lay_v down_o when_o i_o handle_v the_o point_n more_o large_o first_o though_o i_o deny_v the_o law_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o letter_n upon_o mount_n sinai_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o matter_n &_o substance_n of_o it_o in_o the_o spirit_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o mighty_a counsellor_n and_o great_a lawgiver_n our_o lord_n jesus_n isa_n 33.22_o i_o do_v subscribe_v unto_o that_o as_o a_o truth_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o zanchius_n that_o this_o difference_n of_o divine_a law_n be_v not_o so_o much_o from_o the_o various_a substance_n of_o the_o law_n or_o diversity_n of_o time_n as_o from_o the_o various_a reason_n with_o which_o they_o be_v promulgate_v by_o god_n and_o exhibit_v to_o the_o church_n differentia_fw-la haec_fw-la legum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la a_o variâ_fw-la legum_fw-la substantiâ_fw-la temporumve_fw-la diversitate_fw-la quam_fw-la a_o variis_fw-la rationibus_fw-la quibus_fw-la illae_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la promulgatae_fw-la atque_fw-la exhibitae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la i_o do_v acknowledge_v with_o paul_n that_o in_o the_o mind_n i_o myself_o do_v serve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n not_o only_o by_o believe_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n for_o justification_n but_o by_o love_a god_n and_o my_o brother_n by_o a_o sanctify_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n in_o i_o i_o confess_v that_o the_o law_n be_v old_a for_o the_o matter_n &_o substance_n of_o it_o as_o it_o command_v love_n to_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v new_a in_o we_o and_o to_o we_o as_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o that_o of_o john_n a_o new_a commandment_n to_o wit_n of_o love_n i_o write_v unto_o you_o which_o be_v true_a in_o he_o and_o in_o you_o 1_o john_n 2.8_o 2_o lie_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o law_n write_v or_o preach_v may_v be_v call_v the_o external_a rule_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o be_v the_o internal_a and_o powerful_a rule_n and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o now_o be_v censure_v as_o i_o have_v former_o be_v by_o some_o when_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o they_o concern_v the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n i_o shall_v speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o another_o who_o you_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n &_o not_o in_o my_o own_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o imprint_v in_o vivified_a heart_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o do_v not_o only_o true_o know_v god_n and_o piety_n and_o equity_n but_o we_o be_v so_o move_v to_o fear_v he_o to_o trust_v in_o he_o to_o love_v he_o to_o worship_n and_o adore_v he_o and_o to_o love_v and_o serve_v our_o neighbour_n and_o to_o mortify_v ourselves_o and_o to_o bear_v valiant_o all_o persecution_n for_o god_n and_o to_o lead_v a_o life_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o willing_o run_v to_o the_o do_v of_o these_o thing_n ad_fw-la substantiam_fw-la autem_fw-la quod_fw-la attinet_fw-la lex_fw-la ista_fw-la spiritus_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la voluntas_fw-la dei_fw-la sed_fw-la cordibus_fw-la per_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la vivifiatis_fw-la impressa_fw-la quâ_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la novimus_fw-la veer_fw-la deum_fw-la pietatemque_fw-la &_o aequitatem_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la ad_fw-la eum_fw-la timendum_fw-la ei_fw-la fidendum_fw-la eum_fw-la amandum_fw-la colendum_fw-la adorandum_fw-la ad_fw-la proximum_fw-la item_n diligendum_fw-la eique_fw-la inserviendum_fw-la denique_fw-la ad_fw-la nostri_fw-la mortificationem_fw-la ad_fw-la mala_fw-la omne_fw-la propter_fw-la deum_fw-la fortiter_fw-la perferenda_fw-la et_fw-la ad_fw-la vitam_fw-la tantum_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la traducendam_fw-la ita_fw-la impellimur_fw-la ut_fw-la ultró_n accurramus_fw-la zanc._n 3_o i_o do_v grant_v that_o moses_n do_v acquaint_v the_o people_n with_o jesus_n christ_n after_o he_o have_v deliver_v the_o law_n of_o work_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v evident_a by_o that_o passage_n in_o deut._n 18._o when_o the_o people_n be_v terrify_v at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n desire_v that_o they_o may_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n no_o more_o god_n do_v affirm_v in_o the_o 17._o vers_fw-la that_o they_o have_v speak_v well_o and_o in_o the_o 18._o verse_n do_v give_v they_o a_o promise_n of_o christ_n i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o a_o prophet_n from_o among_o their_o brethren_n like_v unto_o thou_o and_o will_v put_v my_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o he_o shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o i_o shall_v command_v he_o etc._n etc._n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o wipe_v away_o the_o dirt_n and_o filth_n which_o be_v throw_v upon_o i_o by_o some_o scurrilous_a pamphleteer_n with_o who_o name_n i_o will_v not_o burden_n the_o page_n who_o have_v assert_v that_o i_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o that_o man_n be_v then_o save_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n though_o i_o can_v in_o truth_n profess_v that_o by_o my_o best_a remembrance_n at_o the_o present_a i_o can_v remember_v that_o ever_o i_o be_v tempt_v to_o think_v any_o such_o thing_n since_o i_o receive_v any_o spiritual_a light_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o thus_o much_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o this_o article_n i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o speak_v much_o to_o the_o three_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o any_o rational_a man_n to_o gather_v my_o meaning_n of_o it_o from_o what_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o open_v of_o my_o mind_n concern_v the_o second_o branch_n the_o law_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n be_v that_o by_o which_o a_o christian_a do_v examine_v his_o life_n he_o live_v but_o under_o one_o covenant_n for_o justification_n &_o sanctification_n when_o he_o live_v as_o a_o spiritual_a man_n ought_v to_o live_v he_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n again_o to_o fear_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n by_o which_o he_o cry_v abba_n father_n rom._n 8.15_o but_o if_o he_o shall_v examine_v his_o life_n by_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o sinai_n he_o will_v fear_v again_o for_o that_o law_n work_v fear_n and_o horror_n in_o those_o who_o be_v under_o it_o suppose_v a_o man_n shall_v command_v his_o son_n and_o his_o slave_n the_o same_o thing_n for_o substance_n and_o withal_o shall_v inform_v his_o son_n that_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o obey_v his_o command_n he_o shall_v displease_v a_o love_a father_n but_o if_o the_o slave_n shall_v not_o obey_v his_o command_n he_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n by_o his_o disobedience_n will_v not_o any_o man_n affirm_v that_o these_o two_o do_v examine_v themselves_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n of_o their_o obedience_n thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n god_n command_v love_n in_o the_o first_o covenant_n with_o threaten_n of_o death_n and_o condemnation_n for_o disobedience_n and_o in_o the_o second_o covenant_n we_o be_v assure_v that_o we_o be_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n and_o that_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o our_o father_n in_o christ_n jesus_n rom._n 8._o yet_o this_o be_v make_v know_v unto_o we_o that_o though_o by_o sin_n we_o shall_v not_o total_o fall_v from_o grace_n and_o fall_v under_o condemnation_n yet_o we_o may_v offend_v our_o father_n and_o grieve_v his_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o we_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n whether_o these_o two_o have_v the_o same_o rule_n give_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o examination_n of_o their_o life_n i_o will_v leave_v it_o to_o those_o who_o have_v spiritual_a eye_n in_o their_o head_n to_o judge_v to_o who_o it_o will_v be_v evident_a that_o saint_n do_v not_o fall_v from_o grace_n to_o the_o law_n when_o they_o examine_v themselves_o but_o they_o examine_v themselves_o how_o they_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n which_o be_v sum_v up_o in_o few_o word_n by_o the_o apostle_n john_n to_o wit_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o to_o love_v one_o another_o as_o he_o give_v we_o commandment_n i_o shall_v now_o fall_v upon_o the_o four_o branch_n of_o this_o article_n and_o shall_v desire_v my_o reader_n to_o
carry_v in_o his_o eye_n those_o distinction_n and_o caution_n which_o i_o have_v already_o lay_v down_o while_o we_o shall_v more_o large_o prove_v that_o a_o believer_n be_v not_o under_o the_o mandatory_a power_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n but_o under_o the_o mandatory_a power_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o believe_a christian_n shall_v live_v under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o shall_v at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v under_o the_o mandatory_a power_n of_o the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o sinai_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v in_o the_o spirit_n do_v good_a work_n free_o because_o he_o be_v justify_v and_o yet_o do_v good_a work_n that_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v but_o the_o law_n of_o sinai_n do_v command_v i_o to_o work_v that_o i_o may_v live_v and_o be_v justify_v and_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n i_o be_o inform_v that_o i_o be_o free_o justify_v &_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o i_o shall_v be_v under_o grace_n and_o under_o the_o mandatory_a power_n of_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o sinai_n at_o the_o same_o time_n again_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o i_o shall_v do_v good_a work_n because_o i_o see_v myself_o free_a from_o condemnation_n and_o do_v good_a work_n for_o fear_n of_o condemnation_n but_o the_o law_n command_v i_o to_o do_v good_a work_n for_o fear_n of_o condemnation_n &_o the_o gospel_n because_o i_o be_o free_a from_o condemnation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o i_o shall_v be_v under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o spirit_n and_o under_o the_o mandatory_a power_n of_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o sinai_n i_o shall_v draw_v the_o strength_n of_o these_o argument_n into_o a_o few_o word_n god_n justify_v child_n be_v not_o under_o the_o command_n of_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n but_o the_o command_n of_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o sinai_n be_v the_o command_n of_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o under_o the_o command_n of_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o sinai_n 2_o it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v under_o the_o command_n of_o the_o law_n of_o sinai_n but_o 〈◊〉_d under_o it_o for_o justification_n or_o condemnation_n for_o the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v there_o deliver_v do_v 〈◊〉_d command_n without_o promise_n of_o life_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o threaten_v of_o death_n to_o the_o disobedient_a 2_o cor._n 3._o for_o that_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o law_n 〈…〉_o deliver_v if_o you_o take_v from_o it_o the_o pro●●●●_n threaten_n 3_o law_n be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o rew●●●_n and_o penalty_n and_o though_o the_o same_o 〈…〉_o command_v in_o several_a law_n yet_o we_o say_v 〈◊〉_d be_v several_a law_n because_o they_o have_v several_a reward_n &_o penalty_n annex_v to_o they_o suppose_v the_o punishment_n of_o death_n which_o be_v due_a to_o thief_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o the_o penalty_n of_o restore_v of_o what_o he_o have_v steal_v fourfold_a or_o work_v in_o a_o gallyseven_a year_n we_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o old_a law_n be_v repeal_v and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o new_a law_n make_v concern_v theft_n and_o he_o that_o after_o all_o the_o gospel-light_n which_o have_v break_v forth_o be_v not_o able_a to_o see_v a_o change_n of_o the_o reward_n and_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n of_o zion_n from_o those_o of_o sinai_n do_v for_o his_o wilful_a and_o affect_a ignorance_n deserve_v to_o be_v more_o blind_v 4_o lie_n the_o covenant_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n prophesy_v jer._n 31.31_o be_v new_a in_o reference_n to_o the_o command_n of_o holiness_n which_o appear_v by_o heb._n 8.10_o and_o therefore_o christian_n be_v not_o under_o the_o command_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n of_o sinai_n as_o they_o be_v there_o deliver_v but_o under_o all_o commandment_n as_o deliver_v in_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o zion_n musculus_fw-la and_o zanchius_n do_v both_o make_v use_n of_o this_o place_n for_o the_o prove_v of_o this_o point_n 5_o a_o believe_v christian_n be_v command_v to_o do_v all_o good_a work_n in_o faith_n of_o his_o free_a justification_n but_o the_o law_n do_v not_o command_v he_o to_o do_v good_a work_n in_o faith_n of_o his_o free_a justification_n and_o therefore_o a_o believe_a christian_n be_v not_o command_v to_o do_v good_a work_n by_o the_o law_n i_o suppose_v that_o the_o first_o proposition_n will_v pass_v without_o a_o exception_n for_o the_o second_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o gal._n 3.12_o the_o law_n be_v not_o of_o faith_n but_o the_o man_n that_o do_v they_o shall_v live_v in_o they_o 6_o lie_n the_o apostle_n plain_o say_v gal._n 3.18_o that_o if_o we_o be_v lead_v of_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o if_o we_o be_v under_o the_o mandatory_a power_n of_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o sinai_n we_o be_v under_o it_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 3.19_o we_o know_v that_o whatsoever_o the_o law_n say_v it_o say_v to_o they_o who_o be_v under_o the_o law_n that_o every_o mouth_n may_v be_v stop_v and_o all_o the_o world_n may_v become_v guilty_a before_o god_n you_o can_v put_v a_o man_n under_o the_o command_a power_n of_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o sinai_n but_o you_o must_v put_v he_o under_o the_o command_a power_n reas_n 7._o the_o approve_a distinction_n between_o legal_a and_o evangelical_a obedience_n in_o point_n of_o sanctification_n will_v be_v sound_a unsound_a for_o all_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o they_o yield_v unto_o god_n by_o their_o holy_a walk_n will_v be_v by_o legal_a principle_n and_o not_o evangelicall_n if_o we_o place_v they_o under_o the_o mandatory_a power_n of_o a_o covenant_n of_o work_n i_o hope_v by_o this_o time_n that_o the_o judicious_a and_o spiritual_a reader_n do_v begin_v to_o see_v that_o i_o be_o no_o enemy_n to_o the_o law_n by_o establish_v it_o for_o justification_n by_o believe_v and_o sanctification_n by_o holy_a walk_n and_o that_o my_o expression_n be_v justifiable_a by_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n and_o if_o i_o be_o to_o be_v blame_v for_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v because_o i_o have_v be_v so_o bold_a in_o these_o anti-christian_n and_o antiscripturian_n day_n rather_o to_o keep_v close_o to_o scripture-expression_n than_o to_o tie_v myself_o up_o to_o the_o form_n and_o method_n of_o man_n in_o speak_v of_o these_o covenant_n which_o i_o hope_v will_v further_o appear_v by_o what_o shall_v be_v deliver_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o second_o article_n sect._n 2._o the_o second_o thing_n which_o mr._n gataker_n do_v charge_n upon_o i_o be_v these_o exclamation_n in_o the_o pulpit_n away_o with_o the_o law_n away_o with_o the_o law_n be_v this_o such_o a_o strange_a and_o heretical_a speech_n to_o one_o that_o profess_v himself_o a_o teacher_n in_o israel_n that_o with_o all_o his_o learning_n and_o love_n he_o can_v possible_o make_v a_o favourable_a construction_n of_o it_o may_v not_o love_v which_o think_v no_o evil_a but_o bear_v all_o thing_n and_o hope_v all_o thing_n 1_o cor._n 13.7_o have_v suggest_v this_o unto_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o conscientious_a christian_a that_o something_o which_o either_o precede_v or_o follow_v it_o in_o my_o discourse_n have_v such_o a_o influence_n upon_o it_o to_o free_v it_o from_o the_o poison_n and_o venom_n of_o false_a doctrine_n and_o heresy_n what_o a_o easy_a thing_n be_v it_o to_o gather_v many_o such_o speech_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o ancient_n and_o modern_a writer_n which_o may_v sound_v as_o harsh_a to_o a_o tender_a ear_n as_o this_o do_v and_o do_v yet_o make_v a_o delightful_a sound_n to_o the_o ear_n of_o truth_n as_o they_o lie_v in_o their_o book_n to_o instance_n in_o a_o few_o ambrose_n upon_o the_o 7._o of_o the_o roman_n have_v these_o word_n nec_fw-la enim_fw-la legis_fw-la erit_fw-la adulter_fw-la sed_fw-la evangelij_fw-la qui_fw-la mortuà_fw-la lege_fw-la vinctus_fw-la evangelio_n post_fw-la redit_fw-la ad_fw-la legem_fw-la mortua_fw-la enim_fw-la lex_fw-la dicitur_fw-la cum_fw-la cessat_fw-la ejus_fw-la authoritas_fw-la he_o be_v not_o a_o adulterer_n by_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o gospel_n who_o be_v bind_v to_o the_o gospel_n the_o law_n be_v dead_a do_v return_n unto_o the_o law_n for_o the_o law_n be_v dead_a when_o its_o authority_n cease_v and_o a_o little_a after_o this_o mori_n legi_fw-la deo_fw-la est_fw-la vivere_fw-la to_o die_v to_o the_o law_n be_v to_o live_v to_o god_n luther_n upon_o the_o 5._o chap._n of_o the_o galatian_n have_v these_o word_n habes_fw-la pulcherimum_fw-la et_fw-la optimum_fw-la librum_fw-la omnium_fw-la legum_fw-la in_o cord_n tuo_fw-la
the_o whole_a law_n cum_fw-la sophista_fw-la intelligit_fw-la legem_fw-la abrogari_fw-la eamque_fw-la ceremonialem_fw-la tu_fw-la potius_fw-la intellige_fw-la paulum_fw-la &_o quemlibet_fw-la christianum_fw-la universae_fw-la legi_fw-la abrogari_fw-la simplicitur_fw-la mortuus_fw-la sum_fw-la legi_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la nihil_fw-la plane_n commercij_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la cum_fw-la lege_fw-la luth._o i_o be_o dead_a to_o the_o law_n that_o be_v i_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o the_o law_n est_fw-la autem_fw-la mori_fw-la legi_fw-la lege_fw-la non_fw-la tencri_fw-la sed_fw-la liberum_fw-la esse_fw-la a_o lege_fw-la et_fw-la nescire_fw-la eam_fw-la to_o be_v dead_a unto_o the_o law_n be_v not_o to_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o law_n but_o to_o be_v free_a from_o the_o law_n and_o not_o to_o know_v it_o reas_n 4._o if_o we_o preach_v consolation_n and_o do_v exhort_v people_n to_o expect_v comfort_n from_o god_n we_o may_v bid_v they_o put_v away_o the_o law_n and_o their_o confidence_n of_o expect_v comfort_n by_o it_o the_o law_n work_v wrath_n rom._n 7._o and_o therefore_o it_o do_v not_o work_v joy_n the_o spirit_n of_o joy_n be_v not_o receive_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n we_o receive_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o spirit_n through_o faith_n gal._n 3.14_o res_fw-la 5._o though_o the_o law_n require_v holiness_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o make_v we_o holy_a a_o man_n that_o will_v be_v true_o fanctify_v must_v not_o live_v under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 6.14_o sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o you_o because_o you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n must_v not_o the_o law_n in_o some_o sense_n be_v put_v away_o that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v under_o it_o let_v my_o argument_n be_v well_o weigh_v and_o i_o be_o content_v to_o be_v censure_v in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o shall_v comfort_v myself_o in_o this_o that_o i_o be_o not_o the_o first_o of_o saint_n who_o have_v be_v reproach_v and_o persecute_v as_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o law_n the_o false_a witness_n which_o be_v set_v up_o against_o the_o proto-martyr_n stephen_n do_v bring_v in_o this_o against_o he_o that_o he_o speak_v blasphemous_a word_n against_o the_o law_n act_v 6.13_o and_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o some_o such_o thing_n be_v charge_v upon_o paul_n by_o the_o jew_n as_o we_o may_v gather_v by_o his_o defence_n for_o himself_o before_o festus_n where_o he_o profess_v that_o he_o have_v not_o offend_v against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o jew_n act_n 25.8_o his_o propose_v and_o clear_v objection_n so_o frequent_o in_o his_o epistle_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v traduce_v as_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o law_n do_v sufficient_o prove_v what_o be_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o tongue_n of_o man_n who_o be_v opposer_n of_o that_o doctrine_n of_o free_a grace_n which_o he_o preach_v i_o shall_v shut_v up_o my_o reply_n to_o this_o artitle_v with_o the_o word_n of_o this_o choose_a vessel_n speak_v by_o he_o in_o the_o like_a case_n act_v 24.14_o this_o i_o confess_v that_o after_o the_o way_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n so_o worship_v i_o the_o god_n of_o my_o father_n believe_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n sect._n 3_o the_o next_o article_n which_o the_o subscriber_n do_v bring_v against_o i_o as_o matter_n of_o error_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o pen_n of_o the_o same_o witness_n be_v that_o horrid_a speech_n of_o i_o as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o call_v it_o the_o law_n cut_v off_o a_o man_n leg_n and_o then_o bid_v he_o walk_v reply_n when_o these_o article_n be_v bring_v against_o i_o it_o be_v demand_v of_o i_o whether_o i_o will_v own_v they_o as_o my_o tenant_n and_o opinion_n i_o do_v well_o remember_v that_o i_o give_v they_o this_o answer_n after_o i_o have_v read_v they_o over_o that_o i_o have_v make_v use_n of_o some_o phrase_n and_o expression_n which_o be_v in_o that_o paper_n and_o that_o some_o thing_n which_o be_v therein_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o right_a sense_n sano_fw-la sensu_fw-la may_v pass_v for_o the_o bless_a truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o as_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o paper_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o i_o so_o i_o do_v not_o own_v they_o as_o my_o tenant_n and_o opinion_n because_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o my_o sermon_n and_o discourse_n which_o hold_v forth_o light_a for_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o be_v not_o conjoin_v with_o they_o in_o that_o paper_n and_o that_o answer_n may_v more_o especial_o reach_v these_o particular_a word_n i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a to_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o a_o sermon_n i_o do_v make_v use_n of_o these_o expression_n speak_v of_o the_o impossibility_n of_o our_o fulfil_n the_o law_n for_o justification_n the_o irritate_v power_n of_o the_o law_n by_o which_o sin_n be_v stir_v up_o in_o we_o we_o by_o accident_n be_v make_v worse_o by_o it_o and_o while_o the_o law_n command_v man_n who_o be_v under_o it_o to_o yield_v personal_a and_o perfect_a obedience_n unto_o it_o though_o it_o give_v we_o no_o power_n to_o do_v what_o it_o command_v we_o and_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o grace_n i_o shall_v free_v the_o expression_n from_o that_o horridnesse_n which_o the_o subscriber_n follow_v mr._n gataker_n have_v put_v upon_o it_o or_o else_o i_o shall_v willing_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rash_a inconsiderate_a yea_o horrid_a expression_n which_o fall_v from_o i_o but_o before_o i_o come_v to_o defend_v the_o innocency_n of_o the_o expression_n i_o can_v but_o stand_v still_o a_o little_a and_o pause_v upon_o it_o wonder_v that_o so_o many_o man_n who_o by_o their_o profession_n be_v tie_v and_o engage_v to_o the_o study_n of_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v so_o little_o acquaint_v with_o the_o language_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o remember_v one_o scripture_n expression_n among_o so_o many_o which_o be_v like_a unto_o it_o to_o free_v it_o from_o that_o horridnesse_n which_o they_o will_v put_v upon_o it_o friend_n consider_v what_o you_o do_v if_o you_o censure_v my_o expression_n as_o horrid_a which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n will_v justify_v by_o the_o like_a expression_n of_o his_o own_o in_o scripture_n take_v heed_n that_o you_o do_v not_o censure_v the_o spirit_n as_o well_o as_o i_o and_o strike_v at_o the_o truth_n through_o my_o side_n it_o be_v the_o speech_n of_o plutark_a the_o thick_a cloud_n do_v often_o darken_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o cloud_n of_o passion_n the_o light_n of_o reason_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o thus_o i_o be_o apt_a to_o think_v it_o be_v with_o you_o your_o passion_n certain_o be_v high_a or_o else_o how_o can_v you_o be_v so_o low_a in_o your_o reason_n so_o unadvised_o to_o condemn_v that_o as_o a_o horrid_a speech_n which_o by_o warrant_n from_o scripture_n i_o shall_v prove_v to_o be_v harmless_a but_o in_o the_o first_o place_n let_v we_o inquire_v where_o this_o horridnesse_n do_v lie_v i_o be_o ready_a to_o believe_v that_o you_o be_v not_o such_o enemy_n to_o the_o law_n to_o assert_v the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o speech_n have_v any_o thing_n horrid_a in_o it_o you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o it_o be_v horrid_a to_o say_v that_o the_o law_n bid_v man_n to_o walk_v the_o horrid_a treason_n then_o of_o the_o speech_n must_v lie_v in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o have_v find_v i_o have_v find_v out_o the_o horridnesse_n of_o it_o it_o be_v horrid_a to_o affirm_v that_o the_o law_n do_v cut_v off_o a_o man_n leg_n let_v we_o bring_v it_o to_o the_o bar_n of_o truth_n to_o be_v try_v and_o if_o it_o can_v bring_v speech_n in_o scripture_n like_v unto_o it_o where_o the_o apostle_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o same_o point_n which_o i_o handle_v when_o i_o deliver_v it_o let_v it_o be_v still_o brand_v with_o the_o hot_a iron_n of_o the_o subscriber_n and_o pass_v for_o a_o horrid_a error_n 1._o let_v we_o compare_v this_o speech_n with_o that_o of_o paul_n 2_o cor._n 3.6_o the_o letter_n kinse_v which_o expositor_n with_o one_o consent_n uno_fw-la ore_fw-la do_v expound_v to_o be_v mean_v of_o the_o law_n and_o which_o the_o word_n follow_v of_o the_o apostle_n do_v so_o plain_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v bootless_a and_o in_o vain_a for_o any_o man_n to_o deny_v it_o we_o shall_v take_v it_o therefore_o for_o grant_v that_o the_o law_n kill_v and_o this_o be_v paul_n or_o rather_o god_n assertion_n who_o give_v this_o law_n now_o let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_n whether_o it_o be_v more_o horrid_a to_o say_v
it_o do_v begin_v to_o be_v the_o accuser_n own_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o article_n be_v my_o preach_v plain_o of_o this_o truth_n that_o god_n do_v not_o see_v any_o sin_n in_o his_o justify_v child_n which_o be_v a_o truth_n which_o i_o hope_v to_o maintain_v unto_o death_n i_o shall_v therefore_o acquaint_v the_o reader_n with_o my_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n 2_o with_o some_o reason_n which_o i_o have_v lay_v down_o to_o demonstrate_v it_o to_o be_v a_o truth_n 3_o in_o what_o sense_n i_o do_v conceive_v it_o to_o be_v a_o error_n which_o i_o hope_v will_v abundant_o satisfy_v the_o intelligent_a reader_n and_o cleanse_v i_o from_o the_o filth_n and_o guilt_n which_o be_v cast_v and_o charge_v upon_o i_o by_o the_o subscriber_n 1._o when_o i_o preach_v that_o god_n see_v no_o sin_n in_o his_o justify_v child_n my_o meaning_n be_v in_o reference_n to_o justification_n god_n see_v his_o sin_n guilt_n and_o punishment_n lay_v &_o charge_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n and_o therefore_o can_v see_v any_o sin_n in_o he_o according_a to_o that_o sweet_a and_o elegant_a speech_n of_o hierom._n that_o say_v he_o which_o be_v cover_v be_v not_o see_v that_o which_o be_v not_o see_v be_v not_o impute_v that_o which_o be_v not_o impute_v shall_v not_o be_v punish_v quod_fw-la tegitur_fw-la non_fw-la vidertur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la videtur_fw-la non_fw-la imputatur_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la imputatur_fw-la non_fw-la punietur_fw-la and_o the_o same_o truth_n be_v lay_v down_o by_o mr._n ward_n of_o ipswich_n who_o you_o all_o will_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o faithful_a &_o sound_a writer_n by_o who_o treatise_n entitle_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n the_o lord_n be_v please_v to_o beam_n in_o at_o my_o first_o conversion_n some_o gospel-light_n into_o my_o soul_n while_o i_o be_v endeavour_v to_o establish_v my_o own_o righteousness_n the_o word_n follow_v be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o 9_o chap._n of_o the_o life_n of_o faith_n pag._n 85._o what_o say_v he_o if_o god_n look_v upon_o the_o hand-writing_n against_o we_o do_v be_v not_o see_v the_o bill_n cancelld_v with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o son_n and_o our_o surety_n which_o for_o matter_n of_o guilt_n defilement_n and_o punishment_n be_v sufficient_a to_o expunge_v cover_v nullify_v abolish_v and_o whole_o to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o he_o neither_o see_v will_v see_v nor_o can_v see_v they_o as_o sin_n and_o debt_n bear_v action_n against_o we_o oblige_v we_o to_o any_o penalty_n i_o may_v heap_v up_o place_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o have_v subscribe_v to_o the_o same_o truth_n in_o the_o same_o or_o the_o like_a word_n there_o be_v no_o phrase_n so_o common_o use_v by_o luther_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o galatian_n as_o this_o that_o god_n see_v no_o sin_n in_o his_o child_n but_o because_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n to_o truth_n be_v of_o no_o authority_n with_o myself_o consider_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o consider_v so_o much_o who_o it_o be_v that_o speak_v as_o what_o be_v speak_v non_fw-la quis_fw-la sed_fw-la quid_fw-la etc._n etc._n salu._n i_o shall_v not_o burden_n the_o page_n with_o quotation_n out_o of_o writer_n but_o shall_v rather_o present_v unto_o you_o some_o ground_n from_o scripture_n by_o which_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o in_o a_o scripture-sence_n god_n may_v be_v say_v to_o see_v no_o sin_n in_o his_o child_n arg._n 1._o christ_n have_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n tit._n 2.14_o and_o therefore_o god_n see_v no_o sin_n in_o we_o from_o which_o we_o be_v not_o redeem_v arg._n 2._o god_n have_v forgive_v we_o through_o christ_n all_o our_o trespass_n col._n 2.13_o and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o trespass_n in_o we_o which_o god_n can_v see_v as_o not_o forgive_v eph._n 4.32_o arg._n 3._o he_o have_v love_v we_o and_o wash_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n rev._n 1.5_o and_o therefore_o can_v see_v no_o sin_n in_o we_o from_o which_o we_o be_v not_o wash_v when_o spot_n be_v wash_v out_o of_o a_o cloth_n they_o do_v not_o remain_v in_o it_o still_o god_n have_v wash_v away_o the_o spot_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v not_o still_o remain_v upon_o our_o fowl_n arg._n 4._o christ_n be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v any_o sin_n which_o be_v not_o take_v away_o arg._n 5._o christ_n have_v make_v a_o end_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o therefore_o god_n in_o this_o respect_n do_v not_o any_o long_o see_v they_o arg._n 6._o god_n have_v remove_v sin_n as_o far_o from_o we_o as_o the_o east_n be_v from_o the_o west_n psal_n 103.12_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v not_o see_v they_o or_o we_o as_o unjustify_v from_o they_o arg._n 7._o god_n have_v blot_v they_o out_o of_o his_o debt-book_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v not_o see_v they_o as_o chargeable_a upon_o we_o isa_n 43.25_o ay_o even_o i_o be_o he_o that_o blot_v out_o thy_o transgression_n for_o my_o own_o sake_n and_o will_v not_o remember_v thy_o sin_n arg._n 8._o god_n be_v pacify_v towards_o we_o for_o all_o that_o we_o have_v do_v ezek._n 16.63_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v not_o see_v sin_n in_o we_o ar._n 9_o god_n by_o his_o son_n have_v remove_v the_o iniquity_n of_o his_o people_n in_o one_o day_n zech._n 3.9_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v not_o see_v they_o as_o not_o remove_v away_o arg._n 10._o christ_n jesus_n do_v save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n mat._n 1._o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v any_o sin_n in_o they_o from_o which_o they_o be_v not_o save_v arg._n 11._o all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o be_v justify_v from_o all_o thing_n act_n 13.39_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v any_o sin_n in_o they_o from_o which_o they_o be_v not_o justify_v arg._n 12._o god_n have_v cover_v the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n rom._n 4.5_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v they_o arg._n 13._o believer_n be_v not_o in_o their_o sin_n 1_o cor._n 15.17_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v they_o as_o yet_o in_o their_o sin_n arg._n 14._o christ_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o of_o god_n wisdom_n righteousness_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n 1_o cor._n 1.30_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v sin_n in_o we_o arg._n 15._o christ_n be_v make_v sin_n for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o 2_o cor._n 5._o last_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v sin_n in_o we_o arg._n 16._o christ_n have_v give_v himself_o for_o our_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v deliver_v we_o from_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o our_o father_n gal._n 1.4_o and_o therefore_o the_o father_n do_v not_o see_v sin_n in_o we_o arg._n 17._o we_o be_v holy_a unblameable_a and_o unreprovable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n col._n 1.22_o and_o therefore_o he_o see_v no_o sin_n in_o we_o arg._n 18._o the_o conscience_n be_v purge_v from_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n heb._n 9.14_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v sin_n inn_n arg._n 19_o christ_n have_v bear_v our_o sin_n and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v they_o upon_o we_o but_o know_v where_o he_o have_v lay_v they_o 1_o pet._n 2.24_o isa_n 53._o arg._n 20._o we_o have_v a_o answer_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 1_o pet._n 3.21_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o see_v sin_n in_o we_o for_o a_o conscience_n guilty_a of_o sin_n be_v a_o evil_a conscience_n arg._n 21._o he_o that_o deny_v this_o do_v in_o effect_n deny_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v a_o anti-christ_n for_o he_o be_v manifest_v to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n 1_o john_n 3.5_o and_o in_o he_o be_v no_o sin_n arg._n 22._o nothing_o can_v be_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n rom._n 8.33_o and_o therefore_o god_n see_v no_o sin_n as_o chargeable_a upon_o we_o or_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o we_o for_o these_o and_o many_o other_o reason_n which_o may_v be_v produce_v it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v that_o god_n see_v no_o sin_n in_o his_o justify_v people_n and_o therefore_o christ_n speak_v of_o his_o justify_v church_n say_v that_o his_o love_n be_v all_o fair_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o spot_n in_o she_o cant._n 4.7_o and_o the_o king_n daughter_n be_v all_o glorious_a within_o psal_n 45.13_o and_o in_o these_o term_n and_o expression_n or_o the_o like_a i_o have_v former_o acquaint_v those_o who_o have_v hear_v i_o concern_v my_o judgement_n in_o this_o point_n but_o three_o though_o i_o affirm_v all_o this_o concern_v god_n
or_o line_n of_o your_o hand_n if_o i_o have_v be_v infect_v with_o error_n the_o apostle_n command_v we_o who_o be_v spiritual_a that_o if_o any_o man_n be_v overtake_v with_o a_o fault_n to_o restore_v such_o a_o one_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n gal._n 6.1_o when_o the_o cry_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n be_v great_a and_o grievous_a the_o lord_n go_v down_o to_o see_v whether_o they_o have_v do_v according_a to_o the_o cry_n of_o it_o and_o when_o this_o cry_n come_v unto_o you_o concern_v i_o you_o may_v have_v do_v well_o according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o have_v imitate_v god_n and_o to_o have_v query_v whether_o it_o be_v according_a to_o the_o cry_n and_o i_o can_v have_v send_v you_o divers_a godly_a people_n at_o that_o time_n who_o shall_v have_v take_v a_o oath_n of_o it_o if_o it_o have_v be_v lawful_o give_v they_o that_o i_o deliver_v thing_n opposite_a and_o contrary_a to_o what_o you_o have_v present_v to_o the_o world_n rather_o than_o what_o you_o affirm_v that_o i_o say_v i_o shall_v therefore_o crave_v leave_n to_o give_v a_o true_a report_n unto_o the_o world_n of_o that_o which_o i_o have_v deliver_v concern_v this_o thing_n not_o seek_v your_o discredit_n but_o endeavour_v to_o free_v myself_o and_o the_o truth_n from_o the_o discredit_n which_o you_o have_v bring_v upon_o we_o by_o your_o false_a relation_n 1._o i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o at_o wapping_n i_o speak_v from_o these_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n psal_n 40.12_o innumerable_a evil_n have_v compass_v i_o about_o my_o iniquity_n have_v take_v hold_v upon_o i_o so_o that_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o look_v up_o they_o be_v more_o than_o the_o hair_n of_o my_o head_n therefore_o my_o heart_n fail_v i_o and_o in_o the_o open_n of_o they_o i_o do_v affirm_v that_o if_o any_o shall_v ask_v i_o as_o the_o eunuch_n do_v philip_n act_v 8.34_o of_o who_o speak_v the_o prophet_n this_o of_o himself_o or_o of_o some_o other_o man_n i_o shall_v answer_v that_o it_o will_v be_v plain_a that_o he_o do_v prophetical_o speak_v of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o the_o holy-ghost_n may_v be_v hear_v as_o a_o expositor_n and_o if_o we_o do_v interpret_v scripture_n by_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o best_a way_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n the_o place_n which_o i_o make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o be_v in_o heb._n 10.5_o where_o the_o apostle_n do_v apply_v the_o precedent_a word_n unto_o jesus_n christ_n and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o i_o do_v take_v my_o rise_n from_o luther_n application_n of_o they_o with_o some_o harsh_a expression_n unto_o christ_n i_o do_v affirm_v that_o this_o be_v altogether_o false_a for_o it_o be_v then_o unknown_a unto_o i_o that_o luther_n have_v ever_o expound_v they_o so_o god_n have_v teach_v i_o better_o then_o that_o i_o shall_v make_v luther_n my_o rule_n for_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n i_o have_v learned_a to_o call_v no_o man_n master_n but_o jesus_n christ_n nullius_fw-la astrictus_fw-la jurare_fw-la in_o verba_fw-la magistri_fw-la luther_n be_v not_o of_o great_a authority_n with_o i_o than_o master_n gataker_n far_o than_o i_o do_v apprehend_v that_o he_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o meaning_n of_o scripture_n if_o i_o have_v have_v a_o desire_n to_o have_v persuade_v the_o people_n that_o i_o preach_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n unto_o they_o from_o the_o authority_n of_o expositor_n it_o have_v be_v a_o easy_a thing_n to_o have_v stuff_v my_o discourse_n with_o quotation_n draw_v from_o they_o and_o not_o to_o have_v make_v use_n of_o luther_n only_a ancient_a and_o modern_a writer_n have_v usual_o expound_v the_o word_n as_o i_o do_v musculus_fw-la say_v that_o all_o the_o ancient_n do_v expound_v this_o of_o christ_n not_o that_o our_o sin_n be_v proper_o he_o but_o by_o dispensation_n as_o he_o be_v a_o mediator_n between_o we_o and_o the_o father_n hoc_fw-la veteres_fw-la omnes_fw-la ita_fw-la de_fw-la christo_fw-la exponunt_fw-la ut_fw-la nostra_fw-la peccata_fw-la sint_fw-la ipsius_fw-la non_fw-la proprie_fw-la sed_fw-la dispensatione_fw-la quâ_fw-la se_fw-la mediatorem_fw-la inter_fw-la nos_fw-la et_fw-la patrem_fw-la obtulit_fw-la pomeranus_n say_v that_o iniquity_n take_v hold_v of_o christ_n not_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v commit_v but_o which_o he_o have_v take_v upon_o himself_o christum_fw-la comprehenderunt_fw-la iniquitates_fw-la suae_fw-la non_fw-la quas_fw-la fecerat_fw-la sed_fw-la quas_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la susceperat_fw-la diluendas_fw-la and_o thus_o i_o then_o expound_v the_o word_n according_a to_o that_o of_o fulgentius_n he_o that_o have_v no_o sin_n of_o his_o own_o do_v bear_v we_o qui_fw-la non_fw-la habuit_fw-la propria_fw-la portavit_fw-la aliena_fw-la christ_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v his_o sin_n not_o because_o they_o be_v inhesive_o in_o he_o but_o because_o they_o be_v impute_v unto_o he_o he_o be_v content_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v charge_v upon_o he_o that_o we_o may_v be_v discharge_v from_o they_o i_o be_o not_o the_o first_o who_o have_v assert_v that_o christ_n have_v confess_v that_o our_o sin_n be_v he_o 2_o cor._n 5._o isa_n 53_o etc._n etc._n but_o whereas_o you_o will_v make_v your_o reader_n believe_v that_o upon_o this_o account_n i_o will_v whole_o take_v away_o confession_n of_o sin_n this_o i_o do_v deny_v and_o i_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o main_a use_n of_o this_o sermon_n be_v to_o teach_v believer_n how_o they_o shall_v in_o a_o evangelicall_n way_n confess_v sin_n over_o the_o head_n of_o the_o scape-goat_n levit._n 16.21_o to_o wit_n in_o faith_n behold_v they_o lay_v and_o charge_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v the_o best_a confession_n of_o our_o sin_n in_o which_o we_o do_v confess_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o christ_n goodness_n that_o our_o si●s_n be_v lay_v upon_o jesus_n christ_n but_o you_o be_v not_o the_o first_o who_o have_v endeavour_v to_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o i_o be_o against_o the_o confession_n of_o sin_n though_o about_o the_o same_o time_n i_o preach_v public_o at_o coleman-street_n upon_o these_o word_n 1_o john_n 1.9_o if_o we_o confess_v our_o sin_n he_o be_v just_a and_o faithful_a to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o unrighteousness_n and_o in_o gracious-street_n and_o at_o algate_n upon_o the_o same_o text_n which_o sermon_n be_v not_o out_o of_o the_o memory_n of_o many_o who_o hear_v i_o who_o therefore_o will_v not_o believe_v you_o if_o you_o shall_v get_v the_o whole_a province_n to_o swear_v that_o you_o have_v speak_v truth_n and_o that_o i_o may_v declare_v myself_o to_o be_v no_o enemy_n to_o confession_n of_o sin_n i_o do_v beseech_v you_o in_o the_o bowel_n of_o christ_n to_o confess_v your_o own_o sin_n and_o fault_n in_o faith_n and_o sincerity_n to_o your_o own_o shame_n and_o god_n glory_n confess_v they_o not_o only_o as_o pharaoh_n exod._n 9.27_o who_o confess_v his_o own_o sin_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o people_n and_o saul_n 1_o sam._n 27.17_o and_o judas_n who_o go_v from_o his_o confession_n to_o a_o halter_n and_o so_o to_o his_o own_o place_n but_o confess_v they_o with_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o truth_n in_o your_o heart_n that_o christ_n with_o one_o offering_n have_v perfect_v for_o ever_o they_o that_o be_v sanctify_v heb._n 10.14_o confess_v they_o for_o your_o own_o humiliation_n and_o for_o the_o elevation_n of_o free_a grace_n ezek._n 16._o last_o job_n 42.6_o and_o as_o you_o do_v profess_v yourself_o a_o friend_n to_o confession_n of_o sin_n in_o your_o judgement_n to_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v a_o friend_n to_o confession_n and_o forsake_v of_o sin_n by_o your_o practice_n prov._n 28.13_o or_o else_o you_o may_v lay_v a_o stumble_a block_n in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o weak_a who_o may_v be_v apt_a to_o look_v upon_o you_o as_o one_o of_o the_o pharisee_n who_o say_v and_o do_v not_o section_n 4._o sir_n i_o be_o enforce_v to_o begin_v again_o with_o that_o exhortation_n with_o which_o i_o do_v shut_v up_o the_o former_a section_n beseech_v you_o that_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o your_o sin_n you_o will_v not_o forget_v to_o confess_v this_o great_a and_o horrid_a sin_n of_o you_o in_o charge_v i_o for_o exhort_v people_n to_o sin_n as_o fast_o as_o they_o will_v because_o there_o be_v a_o fountain_n open_a for_o they_o to_o wash_v in_o i_o do_v think_v that_o if_o the_o devil_n himself_o shall_v get_v up_o into_o a_o pulpit_n to_o preach_v who_o do_v often_o preach_v by_o his_o vicar_n and_o curate_n that_o he_o will_v not_o make_v use_n of_o any_o such_o exhortation_n neither_o do_v ever_o any_o man_n but_o yourself_o aver_v the_o same_o thing_n against_o i_o i_o do_v confess_v that_o this_o article_n be_v bring_v in_o against_o
thou_o for_o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v then_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n 1_o cor._n 3._o though_o a_o spiritual_a man_n can_v make_v a_o good_a use_n of_o mark_n and_o sign_n as_o of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o saint_n when_o he_o see_v they_o in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o fruit_n proceed_v from_o faith_n as_o the_o root_n yet_o by_o draw_v a_o conclusion_n from_o the_o sight_n of_o such_o thing_n which_o we_o apprehend_v to_o be_v in_o ourselves_o of_o our_o happiness_n and_o good_a estate_n before_o god_n we_o shall_v not_o so_o true_o comfort_v as_o certain_o deceive_v ourselves_o four_o this_o be_v for_o the_o reprehension_n of_o blind_a &_o ignorant_a formalist_n who_o place_n religion_n rather_o in_o conformity_n to_o outward_a form_n of_o government_n and_o submission_n to_o external_a ordinance_n then_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v operative_a by_o love_n justification_n do_v not_o lie_v in_o our_o obedience_n to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v not_o make_v saint_n by_o be_v make_v member_n of_o any_o church_n or_o congregation_n but_o by_o faith_n in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n woe_n to_o he_o that_o make_v his_o obedience_n and_o submission_n to_o any_o ordinance_n the_o ground_n of_o his_o comfort_n as_o too_o many_o zealous_a formalist_n do_v who_o run_v from_o congregation_n to_o congregation_n from_o one_o ordinance_n to_o another_o to_o get_v solid_a comfort_n to_o their_o soul_n apprehend_v that_o they_o be_v undo_v creature_n and_o can_v be_v true_a saint_n unless_o they_o be_v under_o the_o true_a practice_n of_o all_o ordinance_n whereas_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a truth_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o truth_n that_o neither_o submit_v to_o a_o ordinance_n can_v make_v a_o true_a saint_n nor_o the_o want_n of_o ordinance_n un-saint_n any_o man_n that_o be_v make_v one_o with_o christ_n in_o believe_v he_o be_v not_o a_o jew_n which_o be_v one_o outward_o neither_o be_v that_o circumcision_n which_o be_v outward_a in_o the_o flesh_n but_o he_o be_v a_o jew_n which_o be_v one_o inward_o and_o circumcision_n be_v that_o of_o the_o heart_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o in_o the_o letter_n who_o praise_n be_v not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n rom._n 2.28_o 29._o so_o he_o be_v a_o true_a saint_n who_o be_v not_o a_o visible_a member_n of_o a_o congregation_n but_o he_o who_o life_n of_o faith_n be_v hide_v in_o jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v baptize_v not_o who_o body_n be_v wash_v with_o water_n but_o who_o soul_n be_v wash_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 1_o pet._n 3.21_o he_o be_v a_o good_a communicant_a and_o break_v bread_n who_o do_v not_o break_v bread_n outward_o but_o by_o faith_n do_v inward_o feed_v upon_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n of_o the_o law_n do_v before_o or_o after_o justification_n nor_o by_o yield_a obedience_n to_o any_o command_n concern_v outward_a ordinance_n but_o by_o our_o submit_v in_o our_o judgement_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o jesus_n christ_n for_o justification_n without_o these_o i_o will_v not_o here_o be_v mistake_v as_o though_o i_o do_v speak_v against_o any_o saint_n or_o any_o who_o be_v spiritual_a and_o faithful_a in_o the_o observation_n of_o any_o external_a ordinance_n but_o against_o zealous_a formalist_n who_o do_v make_v saintship_n and_o fellowship_n to_o depend_v upon_o these_o thing_n and_o be_v not_o spiritual_o acquaint_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n but_o be_v perverter_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o next_o place_n here_o lie_v consolation_n for_o all_o that_o hear_v i_o this_o day_n in_o that_o which_o i_o have_v deliver_v if_o god_n shall_v give_v unto_o they_o believe_v heart_n have_v thou_o never_o do_v any_o good_a work_n have_v thou_o hate_v the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n have_v thou_o never_o look_v after_o the_o discipline_n government_n and_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n yet_o here_o be_v a_o ground_n for_o thou_o to_o come_v in_o unto_o christ_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n through_o believe_v not_o through_o work_v therefore_o let_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o thou_o be_v without_o work_n yet_o thou_o have_v good_a ground_n to_o take_v comfort_n in_o that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v believe_v and_o thou_o be_v in_o a_o happy_a condition_n though_o thou_o have_v never_o do_v a_o good_a work_n thou_o be_v not_o to_o come_v to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o a_o righteous_a man_n but_o thou_o be_v to_o come_v unto_o he_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v make_v a_o righteous_a man_n if_o thou_o see_v thyself_o a_o vile_a sinner_n cast_v thyself_o into_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o father_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o 2_o cor._n 5._o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v leave_v by_o god_n upon_o record_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n for_o sinner_n for_o ignorant_a sinner_n isa_n 29.24_o they_o that_o err_v in_o spirit_n shall_v come_v to_o understanding_n for_o sinner_n that_o murmur_v against_o he_o his_o way_n truth_n &_o prophet_n as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o verse_n they_o that_o murmur_v shall_v learn_v doctrine_n for_o backslide_a sinner_n hosea_n 14.4_o i_o will_v heal_v their_o back_n fliding_n i_o will_v love_v they_o free_o he_o that_o come_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v in_o nowise_o cast_v out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o be_v two_o negative_n in_o the_o greek_a which_o do_v strengthen_v the_o negation_n john_n 6.37_o by_o which_o speech_n our_o saviour_n do_v assure_v poor_a sinful_a creature_n that_o if_o in_o truth_n they_o come_v unto_o he_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v reject_v by_o he_o or_o eject_v from_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o love_n and_o mercy_n christ_n invitation_n be_v to_o all_o sinner_n all_o that_o will_v may_v lay_v hold_n of_o he_o not_o only_o the_o righteous_a but_o the_o unrighteous_a if_o thou_o can_v not_o love_v god_n thou_o may_v look_v on_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o take_v comfort_n that_o god_n love_v thou_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o call_v the_o righteous_a but_o sinner_n the_o chief_a and_o vile_a of_o sinner_n to_o repentance_n therefore_o come_v as_o a_o sinner_n as_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n come_v i_o say_v and_o welcome_a the_o lord_n jesus_n keep_v open-house_n for_o all_o comer_n the_o blind_a the_o lame_a shall_v not_o find_v the_o door_n shut_v upon_o they_o they_o shall_v be_v welcome_a as_o sinner_n that_o can_v be_v entertain_v as_o saint_n it_o be_v report_v of_o rome_n first_o founder_n that_o want_v subject_n he_o send_v forth_o some_o to_o make_v know_v his_o will_n to_o all_o people_n who_o live_v about_o he_o that_o if_o any_o malefactor_n or_o such_o who_o be_v oppress_v in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o live_v do_v come_v in_o unto_o he_o they_o shall_v live_v peaceable_o in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o will_v protect_v they_o against_o any_o that_o shall_v pursue_v they_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o become_v sudden_o the_o king_n of_o a_o numerous_a people_n so_o christ_n do_v send_v forth_o his_o proclamation_n to_o assure_v sinner_n and_o vile_a malefactor_n that_o if_o they_o will_v come_v under_o his_o sceptre_n they_o shall_v live_v peaceable_o under_o his_o government_n and_o that_o he_o will_v safeguard_n they_o from_o all_o their_o enemy_n which_o shall_v pursue_v they_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v his_o dominion_n be_v enlarge_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o sinner_n do_v rejoice_v in_o the_o king_n of_o zion_n this_o doctrine_n if_o it_o be_v receive_v will_v answer_v all_o the_o objection_n which_o be_v raise_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n against_o their_o happiness_n by_o jesus_n christ_n be_v there_o any_o sad_a comfortless_a soul_n which_o will_v not_o be_v comfort_v if_o this_o truth_n be_v receive_v what_o can_v thou_o object_v against_o thyself_o to_o bereave_v thyself_o of_o peace_n which_o will_v not_o be_v remove_v if_o this_o be_v thorough_o believe_v be_v thou_o a_o sinner_n christ_n offer_v himself_o to_o sinner_n be_v thou_o a_o old_a sinner_n a_o old_a sinner_n be_v but_o a_o sinner_n have_v thou_o be_v a_o pharisee_fw-mi like_o paul_n persecute_v christ_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n a_o persecute_v pharisee_n be_v but_o a_o sinner_n and_o paul_n be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n that_o such_o may_v not_o be_v without_o hope_n of_o mercy_n 1_o tim._n 1.16_o be_v thou_o a_o hypocrite_n a_o hypocrite_n may_v come_v as_o a_o sinner_n to_o christ_n bring_v what_o objection_n thou_o can_v and_o a_o persuasion_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n shall_v answer_v it_o and_o if_o thou_o do_v believe_v thou_o have_v as_o good_a
in_o christ_n and_o so_o the_o apostle_n say_v tit._n 3.5_o not_o by_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v we_o that_o be_v according_a to_o his_o eternal_a mercy_n and_o grace_n he_o show_v favour_n and_o compassion_n to_o we_o and_o pardon_v our_o sin_n and_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v worth_a observe_n epes_n 1.4_o where_o speak_v of_o the_o eternal_a grace_n of_o god_n he_o say_v that_o god_n place_v his_o grace_n upon_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o love_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o god_n elect_v we_o because_o we_o will_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n but_o he_o elect_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o love_n good_a work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o consequent_n of_o grace_n nay_o i_o add_v more_o that_o as_o god_n do_v not_o foresee_v our_o good_a work_n so_o not_o our_o faith_n neither_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o grace_n but_o grace_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o faith_n god_n therefore_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o time_n because_o god_n love_v we_o from_o eternity_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o they_o of_o achaia_n say_v that_o they_o believe_v through_o grace_n and_o apollo_n help_v they_o much_o that_o believe_v through_o grace_n act_v 18.27_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n that_o we_o believe_v it_o be_v not_o by_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o grace_n thus_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n from_o eternity_n in_o the_o eye_n and_o sight_n of_o god_n who_o see_v all_o thing_n absent_a as_o if_o they_o be_v present_a and_o speak_v of_o thing_n before_o they_o be_v do_v as_o if_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o next_o place_n grace_n in_o scripture_n be_v consider_v not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v as_o eternal_a as_o god_n himself_o but_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o so_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n god_n discover_v his_o grace_n to_o we_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n so_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o grace_n 2_o tim._n 1.10_o say_v but_o now_o be_v manifest_v to_o we_o by_o the_o appear_a of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v abolish_v death_n and_o have_v bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_v through_o the_o gospel_n he_o speak_v first_o of_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v as_o eternal_a as_o god_n himself_o then_o he_o speak_v of_o eternal_a grace_n manifest_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n it_o be_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o eternal_a grace_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o and_o this_o grace_n be_v call_v sometime_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o father_n rom._n 1.7_o sometime_o it_o be_v call_v the_o grace_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o sometime_o the_o grace_n of_o they_o both_o because_o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n one_o god_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n with_o his_o father_n and_o as_o god_n in_o his_o grace_n be_v say_v to_o forgive_v sin_n mica_n 7._o who_o be_v a_o god_n like_o unto_o thou_o that_o pardon_v sin_n say_v the_o prophet_n so_o jesus_n christ_n be_v say_v to_o forgive_v sin_n the_o apostle_n bid_v we_o to_o forgive_v one_o another_o as_o christ_n have_v forgive_v we_o col._n 3.13_o as_o there_o be_v grace_n in_o the_o father_n to_o forgive_v sin_n so_o there_o be_v the_o same_o grace_n in_o the_o son_n the_o apostle_n doubt_v not_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o be_v circumcise_v act._n 15.7_o and_o by_o this_o grace_n we_o be_v save_v god_n discover_v now_o his_o grace_n to_o we_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o the_o eternal_a father_n this_o grace_n in_o scripture_n be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o as_o the_o sole_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n grace_n be_v so_o hold_v forth_o for_o justification_n that_o all_o thing_n beside_o grace_n be_v exclude_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n exclusive_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v shut_v out_o when_o god_n justifi_v a_o man_n he_o eye_v that_o man_n only_o in_o his_o own_o grace_n and_o when_o god_n justifi_v a_o man_n in_o the_o court_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n he_o strip_v he_o of_o all_o his_o own_o work_n of_o his_o own_o love_n to_o he_o and_o to_o the_o brethren_n and_o give_v he_o only_o a_o sight_n of_o own_o grace_n this_o grace_n do_v exclude_v all_o merit_n if_o there_o be_v any_o merit_n in_o the_o creature_n man_n can_v not_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n the_o apostle_n clear_v it_o to_o we_o by_o that_o passage_n rom._n 4.4_o to_o he_o that_o work_v the_o reward_n be_v not_o reckon_v of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n if_o a_o man_n can_v work_v or_o merit_v any_o thing_n towards_o his_o justification_n and_o salvation_n than_o it_o be_v not_o of_o grace_n say_v the_o apostle_n the_o reward_n be_v not_o of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n if_o a_o man_n work_v than_o he_o expect_v wage_n as_o due_a to_o he_o he_o may_v by_o right_n and_o justice_n claim_v what_o he_o deserve_v so_o if_o we_o do_v work_v for_o salvation_n we_o may_v require_v god_n to_o bestow_v and_o give_v we_o what_o we_o have_v wrought_v for_o but_o true_a grace_n shut_v out_o all_o merit_n and_o work_n in_o the_o creature_n if_o we_o can_v bring_v any_o merit_n of_o the_o creature_n to_o join_v with_o his_o grace_n grace_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o grace_n as_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 11.6_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n so_o before_o god_n we_o be_v save_v in_o his_o eternal_a thought_n he_o in_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o grace_n have_v elect_v we_o to_o justification_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o glory_n by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n yet_o he_o never_o hold_v forth_o his_o grace_n to_o we_o but_o in_o the_o countenance_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o justice_n shine_v bright_a with_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n he_o show_v we_o that_o he_o have_v lay_v all_o our_o sin_n on_o his_o son_n that_o his_o justice_n have_v receive_v full_a satisfaction_n from_o the_o suffering_n of_o his_o son_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o so_o come_v to_o discover_v his_o grace_n to_o we_o in_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n thus_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n constant_o in_o their_o preach_n discover_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n as_o our_o saviour_n to_o nicodemus_n god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v joh._n 3._o and_o the_o apostle_n to_o his_o corinthian_n god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_a the_o world_n to_o himself_o 2_o cor._n 5._o god_n do_v not_o make_v know_v his_o love_n for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n i_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n before_o we_o know_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jeius_n christ_n but_o we_o can_v see_v this_o grace_n until_o we_o behold_v it_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o behold_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o give_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v the_o atonement_n sacrifice_n and_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n before_o we_o can_v read_v the_o everlasting_a love_n and_o favour_n of_o the_o father_n to_o we_o in_o his_o son_n eternal_a love_n be_v the_o primarie_a cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o justification_n but_o it_o can_v be_v apprehend_v by_o we_o until_o we_o apprehend_v in_o the_o first_o place_n our_o redemption_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o when_o christ_n be_v embrace_v as_o a_o saviour_n in_o the_o arm_n of_o faith_n we_o rise_v high_o in_o our_o thought_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v bring_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o eternity_n of_o love_n and_o have_v liberty_n to_o read_v every_o line_n in_o his_o eternal_a volume_n which_o do_v concern_v our_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n and_o be_v full_o confirm_v in_o the_o point_n of_o god_n eternal_a election_n without_o the_o prevision_n of_o good_a work_n which_o shall_v be_v wrought_v by_o the_o creature_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o 9_o to_o the_o roman_n and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v dispute_v or_o rather_o cavil_v against_o this_o truth_n i_o shall_v say_v with_o the_o apostle_n rom._n
grace_n who_o have_v bestow_v spiritual_a life_n light_n and_o operation_n upon_o we_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o high_a expression_n to_o raise_v our_o spirit_n to_o this_o purpose_n 2_o cor._n 2.14_o now_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n which_o always_o cause_v we_o to_o triumph_v in_o christ_n when_o man_n triumph_v there_o be_v great_a joy_n rejoice_v and_o show●ing_v we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o rejoice_v in_o his_o grace_n but_o we_o shall_v triumph_v in_o it_o a_o christian_a may_v ride_v in_o a_o chariott_n of_o triumph_n every_o day_n he_o may_v see_v his_o sin_n curse_n hell_n and_o damnation_n subdue_v and_o overcome_v when_o he_o behold_v god_n in_o the_o look_a glass_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n what_o though_o we_o have_v many_o sin_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o may_v triumph_v because_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n by_o christ_n what_o though_o we_o have_v no_o work_n yet_o we_o may_v triumph_v if_o we_o know_v grace_n there_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o grace_n there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o peace_n here_o or_o glory_n hereafter_o but_o by_o grace_n let_v grace_n therefore_o be_v thy_o glory_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v double_a his_o exhortation_n when_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o rejoice_v that_o they_o may_v double_v their_o diligence_n and_o care_n in_o practice_n of_o their_o duty_n phil._n 4.4_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n always_o and_o again_o i_o say_v rejoice_v so_o suffer_v i_o to_o double_a and_o treble_a my_o exhortation_n you_o have_v nothing_o to_o boast_v in_o but_o grace_n boast_v therefore_o and_o again_o i_o say_v boast_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n god_n seem_v in_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n to_o speak_v to_o a_o hypocritical_a proud_a people_n and_o he_o bid_v they_o bring_v forth_o their_o argument_n and_o put_v he_o in_o remembrance_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v bring_v before_o he_o for_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v justify_v isa_n 43.26_o let_v we_o plead_v together_o declare_v thou_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v justify_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v if_o you_o have_v any_o work_n bring_v they_o out_o use_v all_o your_o argument_n skill_n and_o rhetoric_n say_v what_o you_o can_v for_o yourselves_o to_o plead_v your_o justification_n but_o to_o convince_v they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o stand_v before_o he_o with_o their_o work_n for_o justification_n he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o sin_n thy_o first_o father_n have_v sin_v and_o thy_o teacher_n have_v transgress_v against_o i_o ver_fw-la 27._o to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v what_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o 25_o verse_n that_o he_o will_v blot_v out_o their_o sin_n for_o his_o own_o sake_n so_o it_o be_v with_o we_o brethren_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v we_o can_v bring_v forth_o sufficient_a reason_n and_o argument_n to_o make_v good_a our_o salvation_n by_o our_o work_n if_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o comfort_v we_o but_o our_o own_o work_n we_o shall_v have_v no_o comfort_n at_o all_o in_o his_o presence_n let_v we_o therefore_o as_o we_o be_v engage_v trumpet_n out_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o rich_a and_o precious_a grace_n to_o we_o in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n three_o let_v i_o exhort_v you_o to_o abide_v in_o the._n profession_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o end_n of_o your_o day_n hypocrite_n may_v profess_v grace_n for_o a_o time_n but_o true_a saint_n shall_v hold_v fast_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o end_n joh._n 8.31_o if_o you_o continue_v in_o my_o word_n then_o be_v you_o my_o disciple_n indeed_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n exhort_v the_o religious_a proselyte_n of_o antioch_n act_v 13.43_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o continue_v or_o abide_v in_o grace_n look_v up_o to_o god_n for_o grace_n and_o power_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n to_o enable_v you_o to_o hold_v fast_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o grace_n let_v not_o the_o wise_a and_o learned_a of_o the_o world_n cry_v up_o for_o godliness_n religion_n and_o devotion_n draw_v you_o from_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o live_v in_o dangerous_a in_o perilous_a time_n and_o there_o be_v never_o such_o underminer_n of_o grace_n as_o have_v appear_v in_o these_o sinful_a day_n some_o that_o deny_v the_o lord_n that_o buy_v they_o but_o let_v we_o not_o be_v discourage_v because_o some_o who_o have_v profess_a grace_n have_v fall_v from_o their_o profession_n to_o fancy_v frothy_a notion_n antichristian_a absurdity_n and_o familisticall_a speculation_n consider_v rather_o what_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v 1_o cor._n 11.19_o that_o there_o must_v be_v hersy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v needful_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a the_o devil_n have_v his_o chapalines_n as_o well_o as_o god_n his_o minister_n and_o ambassador_n as_o some_o shall_v be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o hold_v forth_o grace_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o just_a so_o some_o will_v vent_v there_o blasphemous_a conceit_n and_o curse_a imposture_n to_o pervert_v man_n to_o destruction_n if_o the_o good_a god_n sow_v good_a seed_n the_o wicked_a one_o will_v sow_v tare_n among_o the_o wheat_n mat._n 13.24_o when_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v with_o power_n there_o be_v multitude_n come_v to_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o but_o after_o a_o while_n many_o of_o these_o fall_n to_o philosophical_a fancy_n foolish_a dream_n vain_a fable_n and_o idle_a speculation_n loathe_v the_o plain_a gospel_n the_o heavenly_a manna_n as_o the_o israelite_n do_v the_o manna_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n this_o we_o begin_v to_o find_v by_o experience_n but_o let_v not_o this_o shake_v we_o from_o our_o steadfastness_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n god_n have_v appoint_v it_o to_o be_v so_o paul_n be_v confident_a that_o after_o his_o departure_n from_o the_o congregation_n in_o miletus_n grievous_a wolf_n will_v enter_v in_o among_o they_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n and_o that_o of_o their_o own_o self_n shall_v man_n arise_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n to_o draw_v away_o disciple_n after_o they_o act._n 20.29_o if_o the_o apostle_n be_v confident_a in_o his_o time_n that_o it_o will_v be_v so_o when_o he_o see_v they_o under_o the_o pure_a discipline_n and_o government_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o charge_n of_o those_o minister_n teacher_n and_o officer_n who_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n appoint_v over_o they_o fill_v with_o those_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o ascension_n what_o wonder_n be_v it_o if_o we_o meet_v with_o the_o devil_n hee-apostle_n and_o she-apostle_n in_o these_o sinful_a time_n who_o vomit_n forth_o bold_o to_o their_o own_o shame_n and_o god_n dishonour_n hellish_a and_o pestiferous_a doctrine_n for_o the_o most_o high_a spiritual_a truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n if_o we_o consider_v what_o confusion_n and_o disorder_n be_v among_o the_o best_a of_o saint_n now_o and_o be_v enlighten_v to_o see_v our_o want_n of_o many_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o favour_n which_o they_o enjoy_v which_o for_o the_o present_a god_n do_v not_o bestow_v upon_o we_o again_o let_v not_o the_o abuser_n of_o grace_n cause_n you_o to_o dislike_v grace_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n by_o this_o the_o devil_n may_v take_v great_a advantage_n against_o thou_o for_o thy_o hurt_n thou_o may_v have_v injurious_a thought_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n when_o thou_o eye_v some_o who_o abuse_v grace_n but_o continue_v thou_o in_o grace_n fall_v not_o from_o thy_o profession_n nor_o dislike_v the_o preach_n of_o it_o because_o thou_o observe_v some_o who_o abuse_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n turn_v it_o into_o wantonness_n remember_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n some_o gospel_n professor_n do_v walk_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n that_o tender-eyed_n paul_n can_v not_o speak_v of_o they_o without_o tear_n in_o his_o eye_n who_o end_n be_v destruction_n who_o god_n be_v their_o belly_n who_o glory_n be_v there_o shame_n who_o mind_v earthly_a thing_n phil._n 3._o yet_o these_o vile_a wretch_n will_v talk_v of_o grace_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n know_v nothing_o right_o of_o grace_n or_o christ_n and_o judas_n do_v acquaint_v we_o with_o some_o in_o his_o time_n that_o be_v creep_v in_o unaware_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o our_o god_n into_o lasciviousness_n and_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o this_o condemnation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d write_v down_o long_o before_o to_o this_o condemnation_n so_o the_o word_n signify_v for_o as_o god_n have_v appoint_v some_o to_o salvation_n so_o he_o have_v appoint_v some_o to_o damnation_n
and_o these_o urgodly_a man_n be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o damn_a we_o wonder_v to_o see_v a_o generation_n of_o man_n spring_v up_o among_o we_o that_o make_v nothing_o of_o christ_n or_o the_o father_n we_o wonder_v to_o see_v man_n undervalue_v and_o vilify_a the_o grace_n of_o god_n neglect_v all_o christian_a duty_n and_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o be_v such_o creep_v into_o their_o congregation_n and_o why_o shall_v it_o seem_v a_o strange_a thing_n unto_o we_o that_o it_o be_v so_o now_o in_o these_o day_n of_o babylonish_n confusion_n and_o egyptian-darknesse_n see_v it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o bright_a day_n of_o light_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n live_v who_o prophesy_v that_o in_o these_o latter_a day_n perilous_a time_n shall_v come_v and_o man_n shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n that_o we_o may_v not_o stumble_v in_o our_o christian_a race_n at_o these_o abuser_n and_o scandaliser_n of_o grace_n let_v we_o know_v that_o grace_n be_v grace_n though_o man_n abuse_v it_o think_v not_o that_o grace_n be_v not_o grace_n because_o it_o be_v abuse_v but_o know_v that_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o grace_n may_v and_o must_v be_v abuse_v by_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n as_o the_o spider_n suck_v poison_n where_o the_o bee_n suck_v honey_n so_o where_o the_o saint_n suck_v sweetness_n and_o honey_n the_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n suck_v poison_n where_o the_o godly_a fetch_v all_o their_o joy_n and_o comfort_n delight_n and_o refreshment_n there_o wicked_a man_n meet_v with_o their_o ruin_n and_o destruction_n the_o way_n of_o god_n truth_n and_o grace_n be_v right_a and_o the_o just_a and_o faithful_a shall_v walk_v safe_o in_o they_o but_o the_o transgressor_n shall_v fall_v therein_o hosea_n 14.9_o mark_v the_o place_n and_o what_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o same_o way_n in_o which_o the_o saint_n do_v walk_v to_o salvation_n the_o wicked_a shall_v stumble_v and_o fall_v into_o condemnation_n a_o libertine_n hear_v the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n suck_v nothing_o but_o his_o bane_n from_o it_o though_o the_o word_n be_v the_o savour_n of_o life_n unto_o life_n to_o they_o that_o believe_v yet_o be_v it_o the_o savour_n of_o death_n unto_o death_n to_o some_o 2_o cor._n 2.16_o i_o remember_v one_o say_v of_o medicament_n that_o if_o they_o be_v give_v by_o a_o skilful_a physician_n they_o be_v the_o helpful_a hand_n of_o god_n auxiliares_fw-la dei_fw-la manus_fw-la but_o if_o by_o one_o that_o be_v unskilful_a they_o be_v poison_n so_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n when_o it_o be_v skilful_o apply_v when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n teach_v we_o to_o make_v a_o right_a use_n of_o it_o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o salvation_n to_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v rom._n 1.16_o but_o when_o it_o be_v unskilful_o apply_v when_o the_o flesh_n only_o make_v use_v of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n and_o there_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o teach_v we_o to_o make_v a_o right_a use_n of_o it_o we_o turn_v it_o into_o venom_n and_o we_o be_v poison_v to_o our_o destruction_n but_o let_v we_o not_o be_v offend_v at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o it_o have_v be_v so_o former_o it_o be_v so_o and_o will_v be_v so_o nevertheless_o let_v we_o continue_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o look_v up_o to_o god_n that_o we_o may_v continue_v in_o it_o i_o have_v one_o word_n now_o to_o speak_v unto_o those_o who_o for_o the_o present_n be_v not_o apprehendor_n and_o partaker_n of_o this_o grace_n and_o shall_v conclude_v for_o this_o present_a you_o see_v it_o be_v only_o by_o grace_n that_o you_o be_v save_v it_o be_v only_a grace_n that_o bring_v salvation_n to_o the_o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o man_n therefore_o if_o god_n have_v convince_v you_o that_o you_o be_v sinner_n now_o be_v the_o day_n of_o grace_n now_o be_v the_o day_n of_o salvation_n i_o will_v show_v a_o short_a and_o compendious_a but_o a_o true_a way_n to_o happiness_n happy_a be_v all_o you_o that_o believe_v what_o be_v bring_v to_o your_o ear_n this_o day_n concern_v god_n free_a grace_n god_n promise_v to_o meet_v his_o people_n at_o the_o mercy-seat_n exod._n 25._o which_o be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n and_o we_o can_v never_o meet_v with_o god_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o by_o meeting_n with_o his_o grace_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o law_n be_v the_o ministry_n of_o death_n it_o be_v the_o gospel_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o life_n and_o salvation_n look_v therefore_o beyond_o the_o law_n which_o be_v a_o ministry_n of_o condemnation_n 2_o cor._n beyond_o thy_o own_o righteousness_n which_o be_v impurity_n to_o the_o eye_n of_o justice_n behold_v thou_o under_o the_o law_n beyond_o thyself_o who_o be_v a_o object_n of_o misery_n horror_n and_o confusion_n and_o by_o a_o spiritual_a eye_n of_o god_n own_o make_n behold_v his_o grace_n in_o christ_n for_o lose_a and_o undo_v sinner_n harken_v to_o what_o god_n speak_v to_o thou_o he_o invite_v thou_o exhort_v thou_o and_o beseech_v thou_o to_o be_v reconcile_v he_o tell_v thou_o that_o thou_o can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o thy_o own_o work_n but_o by_o his_o free_a grace_n that_o thou_o be_v not_o to_o be_v save_v by_o what_o thou_o have_v do_v but_o by_o what_o christ_n have_v do_v and_o suffer_v though_o thou_o have_v break_v the_o law_n jesus_n christ_n have_v keep_v it_o he_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o law_n for_o righteousness_n for_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v in_o and_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n behold_v god_n stand_v at_o the_o door_n of_o thy_o heart_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o grace_n and_o salvation_n let_v the_o door_n of_o thy_o hair_n fly_v open_a unto_o he_o by_o believe_v and_o he_o will_v feast_v thy_o soul_n as_o christ_n say_v to_o zacheus_n so_o i_o may_v say_v to_o thou_o who_o believe_v what_o i_o speak_v this_o day_n salvation_n be_v come_v into_o thy_o house_n god_n be_v the_o god_n of_o grace_n therefore_o think_v not_o to_o please_v he_o by_o any_o thing_n but_o by_o eye_v of_o his_o grace_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o grace_n he_o come_v to_o reveal_v the_o grace_n of_o his_o father_n if_o thou_o will_v with_o simeon_n take_v christ_n and_o salvation_n in_o thy_o arm_n grasp_v not_o thy_o own_o work_n for_o justification_n but_o believe_v what_o be_v proclaim_v forth_o to_o the_o world_n concern_v salvation_n only_o by_o grace_n the_o spirit_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o if_o thou_o believe_v thou_o shall_v be_v assure_v of_o &_o seal_v to_o redemption_n by_o grace_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n but_o by_o grace_n and_o no_o apprehension_n of_o grace_n but_o by_o believe_v which_o be_v the_o next_o thing_n present_v in_o the_o text_n to_o our_o consideration_n salvation_n be_v not_o by_o work_v but_o believe_v you_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n but_o we_o must_v be_v enforce_v to_o let_v alone_o the_o full_a enlarge_n of_o this_o point_n until_o god_n shall_v give_v we_o another_o opportunity_n for_o the_o present_a i_o have_v do_v *_o ⁎_o *_o salvation_n only_o by_o believe_v sermon_n iii_o ephesian_n 2.8_o 9_o etc._n etc._n for_o by_o grace_v you_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n it_o have_v already_o be_v prove_v unto_o we_o that_o good_a work_n can_v save_v we_o and_o likewise_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o sinner_n without_o work_n have_v present_v itself_o unto_o we_o with_o the_o strength_n sufficiency_n and_o glory_n of_o it_o it_o may_v now_o be_v question_v by_o some_o by_o what_o mean_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n may_v be_v apply_v unto_o ourselves_o and_o apprehend_v by_o we_o our_o apostle_n do_v full_o satisfy_v we_o concern_v this_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o through_o work_v but_o believe_v you_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o affirm_v that_o we_o be_v save_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d propter_fw-la fidem_fw-la for_o our_o faith_n for_o the_o worth_n merit_n dignity_n or_o excellency_n of_o it_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d per_fw-la fidem_fw-la through_o faith_n faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o grace_n by_o which_o grace_n be_v reveal_v and_o apply_v unto_o we_o grace_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n faith_n be_v the_o organ_n or_o instrument_n give_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n for_o the_o
discovery_n and_o application_n of_o his_o grace_n unto_o our_o own_o soul_n as_o no_o rational_a man_n when_o he_o read_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o woman_n who_o be_v disease_v with_o a_o issue_n of_o blood_n mat._n 9.22_o daughter_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n thy_o faith_n have_v make_v thou_o whole_a will_v conclude_v that_o because_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o her_o faith_n do_v make_v her_o whole_a that_o therefore_o she_o be_v not_o make_v whole_a by_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o principal_a cause_n so_o no_o spiritual_a man_n shall_v conclude_v that_o we_o be_v not_o save_v by_o grace_n as_o the_o principal_a cause_n because_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n desire_v therefore_o that_o that_o crown_n may_v stand_v fast_o which_o god_n have_v set_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o show_v you_o that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n or_o through_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o save_v in_o a_o way_n of_o work_v but_o believe_v thus_o god_n save_v and_o justify_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o teach_v his_o son_n in_o what_o way_n they_o be_v to_o expect_v salvation_n god_n in_o a_o vision_n inform_v abraham_n that_o he_o be_v his_o shield_n and_o exceed_v great_a reward_n gen._n 15.6_o and_o he_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o count_v it_o to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n this_o be_v the_o oracle_n of_o truth_n which_o habakkuk_n stand_v upon_o his_o watch_n receive_v from_o the_o lord_n hab._n 2.4_o behold_v his_o soul_n who_o be_v lift_v up_o in_o he_o be_v not_o upright_o but_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n it_o be_v by_o believe_v and_o not_o by_o work_v that_o we_o be_v make_v just_a fides_n justos_fw-la ab_fw-la injustis_fw-la non_fw-la operum_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsa_fw-la fidei_fw-la lege_fw-la discernit_fw-la aug._n truth_n do_v make_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o just_a and_o the_o unjust_a not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n the_o natural_a man_n know_v no_o righteousness_n but_o what_o be_v by_o his_o own_o work_n the_o spiritual_a man_n do_v see_v himself_o righteous_a in_o believe_v thus_o our_o saviour_n direct_v the_o ignorant_a jew_n to_o the_o right_a way_n of_o righteousness_n when_o they_o ask_v he_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v that_o they_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n io._n 6.28_o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n say_v he_o that_o you_o believe_v on_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v if_o any_o inquire_v after_o salvation_n let_v he_o know_v it_o be_v not_o by_o work_n the_o plain_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o justification_n be_v only_o by_o believe_v tit._n 2._o the_o grace_n of_o god_n bring_v salvation_n teach_v we_o to_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o grace_n in_o the_o first_o place_n teach_v we_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n but_o in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o bring_v justification_n &_o salvation_n through_o believe_v &_o then_o secondary_o the_o same_o grace_n teach_v we_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n after_o we_o have_v believe_v for_o salvation_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v give_v ephes_n 1.13_o in_o believe_v we_o enter_v into_o our_o rest_n heb._n 4.3_o keep_v the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n &_o see_v ourselves_o unstated_a in_o happiness_n and_o keep_v a_o christian_n sabbath_n it_o be_v only_o in_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o felicity_n which_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o apostle_n in_o their_o epistle_n do_v not_o hold_v forth_o any_o truth_n more_o frequent_o than_o this_o gal_n 5.6_o in_o jesus_n christ_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n and_o ro._n 5.1_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n when_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o prison_n ask_v paul_n &_o silas_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v suppose_v salvation_n be_v only_o attainable_a by_o work_v they_o do_v at_o one_o discover_v unto_o he_o his_o error_n &_o blindness_n &_o acquaint_v he_o with_o the_o soulsaving_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n assure_v he_o that_o if_o he_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o shall_v be_v save_v act_n 16.31_o we_o find_v not_o rest_v in_o our_o spirit_n by_o the_o sight_n of_o our_o work_n love_n sincerity_n labour_n &_o endeavour_n but_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o christ_n have_v by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n confirm_v to_o you_o this_o truth_n i_o shall_v now_o amplyfie_v it_o by_o show_v unto_o you_o more_o full_o how_o it_o may_v be_v in_o truth_n affirm_v that_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o by_o faith_n alone_o not_o by_o faith_n join_v with_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n without_o work_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o where_o true_a faith_n be_v work_n will_v follow_v yet_o salvation_n be_v through_o faith_n without_o work_n when_o we_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o love_n by_o our_o love_n and_o faith_n together_o but_o by_o faith_n which_o produce_v love_n our_o eye_n be_v shut_v to_o the_o behold_v all_o thing_n in_o ourselves_o and_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o spirit_n be_v enlighten_v to_o behold_v what_o be_v in_o god_n grace_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n consonant_a to_o this_o be_v paul_n sweet_a and_o comfortable_a conclusion_n rom._n 3.28_o we_o conclude_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o people_n be_v a_o work_n command_v by_o the_o law_n but_o according_a to_o paul_n conclusion_n of_o truth_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o love_n to_o god_n or_o his_o people_n when_o god_n discover_v his_o grace_n to_o a_o man_n for_o his_o justification_n he_o show_v he_o that_o as_o his_o evil_a work_n can_v bring_v damnation_n unto_o he_o so_o his_o good_a work_n can_v be_v available_a for_o his_o justification_n that_o assurance_n of_o god_n love_n which_o some_o professor_n have_v get_v by_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o own_o work_n be_v never_o illuminate_v in_o their_o understanding_n to_o behold_v god_n grace_n in_o the_o light_n and_o beam_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o the_o true_a assurance_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o deceit_n and_o lie_a divination_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n concern_v their_o own_o happiness_n for_o salvation_n be_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n god_n do_v not_o require_v we_o to_o do_v good_a work_n for_o salvation_n in_o the_o conscience_n but_o do_v positive_o and_o absolute_o exclude_v they_o as_o thing_n which_o have_v no_o influence_n at_o all_o upon_o that_o first_o assurance_n which_o he_o do_v give_v unto_o his_o people_n of_o his_o love_n which_o be_v by_o a_o pure_a simple_a unmix_a act_n of_o faith_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n be_v never_o give_v to_o comfort_v we_o until_o god_n have_v strip_v we_o of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n work_n and_o performance_n and_o have_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o free_a grace_n without_o any_o thing_n in_o ourselves_o that_o may_v make_v we_o fit_a for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n do_v lay_v down_o this_o as_o a_o truth_n second_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o true_a saint_n gal._n 2.16_o assert_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n even_o we_o say_v he_o have_v believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v no_o flesh_n be_v justify_v it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o faith_n which_o have_v love_n join_v with_o it_o which_o they_o make_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v but_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n without_o any_o work_n at_o all_o by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o have_v peace_n of_o conscience_n augustine_n do_v plain_o lay_v down_o his_o judgement_n in_o this_o point_n according_a to_o truth_n noli_fw-la presumere_fw-la de_fw-la operibus_fw-la ante_fw-la fidem_fw-la quia_fw-la peccatorem_fw-la te_fw-la fides_fw-la invenit_fw-la etsi_fw-la te_fw-la fides_fw-la data_fw-la facit_fw-la justum_fw-la impium_fw-la invenit_fw-la quem_fw-la faceret_fw-la justum_fw-la presume_v not_o upon_o thy_o work_n do_v before_o faith_n because_o faith_n find_v thou_o a_o
grace_n of_o god_n can_v not_o keep_v that_o salvation_n which_o he_o receive_v how_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a without_o grace_n to_o regain_v that_o salvation_n which_o he_o have_v lose_v cum_fw-la igitur_fw-la sine_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la salutem_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n custodire_fw-la quam_fw-la accepit_fw-la quomodo_fw-la sine_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la potest_fw-la reparare_fw-la quam_fw-la perdidit_fw-la aug._n in_o epist_n second_o it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o convince_a of_o man_n of_o their_o disability_n to_o will_v their_o own_o justification_n and_o salvation_n what_o god_n account_v wisdom_n that_o when_o man_n look_v on_o it_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n he_o acccount_v it_o nothing_o but_o folly_n and_o madness_n how_o can_v a_o man_n be_v desirous_a of_o christ_n who_o apprehend_v that_o the_o thing_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o but_o foolishness_n a_o profane_a pope_n sport_v himself_o and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o great_a riches_n he_o have_v get_v by_o profess_v the_o gospel_n in_o a_o carnal_a way_n utter_v these_o word_n what_o great_a riches_n have_v we_o get_v to_o ourselves_o by_o this_o fable_n of_o jesus_n christ_n quantus_fw-la divitias_fw-la lucrati_fw-la sumus_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la fabulâ_fw-la christi_fw-la so_o man_n that_o be_v not_o enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n to_o behold_v the_o world_n of_o truth_n do_v conalve_v the_o truth_n which_o man_n preach_v concern_v christ_n be_v mere_a fancy_n fable_n madness_n and_o that_o foolishness_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n at_o all_o in_o which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n i_o will_v instance_n but_o in_o one_o or_o two_o particular_n to_o show_v you_o how_o carnal_a reason_n oppose_v grace_n grace_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v rom._n 9.18_o consider_v how_o carnal_a reason_n oppose_v this_o truth_n of_o god_n suppose_v say_v carnal_a reason_n that_o a_o king_n will_v hate_v some_o of_o his_o subject_n because_o he_o will_v hate_v they_o and_o love_v other_o because_o he_o will_v love_v they_o and_o shall_v give_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o his_o action_n but_o his_o own_o will_n be_v not_o such_o a_o king_n more_o fit_a to_o live_v among_o beast_n then_o to_o reign_v over_o man_n and_o shall_v we_o then_o think_v that_o the_o wise_a god_n do_v love_n and_o elect_v some_o because_o he_o will_v love_v they_o and_o hate_n and_o reprobate_v other_o because_o he_o will_v hate_v they_o thus_o carnal_a man_n measure_v the_o action_n of_o god_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n they_o see_v nothing_o but_o folly_n and_o madness_n in_o that_o by_o which_o god_n discover_v his_o great_a wisdom_n to_o those_o that_o be_v enlighten_v to_o behold_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n second_o god_n in_o christ_n do_v present_v himself_o as_o have_v a_o sufficiency_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o great_a of_o sinner_n without_o work_n but_o how_o do_v carnal_a reason_n strong_o and_o vigorous_o fight_v against_o god_n goodness_n conclude_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n in_o this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o law_n and_o good_a work_n will_v presen_o be_v destroy_v a_o natural_a man_n can_v believe_v that_o god_n be_v so_o gracious_a as_o gospel-minister_n will_v persuade_v the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v as_o the_o unbelieve_a lord_n when_o the_o prophet_n tell_v he_o of_o the_o great_a plenty_n in_o samaria_n say_v if_o god_n shall_v open_v window_n in_o heaven_n can_v this_o this_o thing_n be_v 1_o king_n 7._o so_o a_o natural_a man_n when_o christ_n be_v offer_v to_o sinner_n without_o any_o work_n unless_o god_n give_v grace_n to_o believe_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v if_o the_o window_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o all_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n in_o heaven_n shall_v come_v down_o upon_o we_o if_o god_n shall_v let_v out_o all_o the_o bowel_n of_o his_o pity_n and_o compassion_n to_o poor_a sinner_n it_o can_v be_v so_o as_o you_o say_v and_o speak_v concern_v free_a grace_n to_o sinner_n and_o ungodly_a one_o so_o that_o if_o a_o natural_a man_n shall_v do_v nothing_o but_o hear_v sermon_n and_o although_o angel_n or_o christ_n himself_o shall_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o preach_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v be_v as_o able_a of_o himself_o to_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n for_o justification_n as_o to_o believe_v true_o and_o save_o in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o some_o will_v say_v that_o if_o it_o be_v thus_o that_o a_o man_n may_v as_o easy_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n keep_v the_o law_n as_o believe_v the_o gospel_n why_o do_v not_o god_n then_o rather_o enable_v we_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v be_v save_v then_o bid_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n save_v we_o by_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o not_o by_o enable_v we_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n for_o justification_n because_o god_n will_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o our_o salvation_n god_n will_v not_o save_v we_o in_o a_o way_n of_o work_v but_o in_o a_o way_n of_o believe_a that_o all_o the_o glory_n may_v be_v give_v to_o he_o the_o apostle_n give_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o work_n that_o no_o man_n may_v boast_v ver_fw-la 9_o not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v by_o which_o argument_n he_o prove_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n rom._n 4.2_o if_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n say_v he_o he_o have_v whereof_o to_o glory_v as_o we_o may_v observe_v it_o in_o some_o people_n who_o be_v build_v upon_o legal_a principle_n like_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi luke_n 18.11_o they_o be_v boast_v that_o they_o be_v not_o as_o other_o man_n as_o though_o their_o good_a work_n have_v make_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o other_o this_o frame_n of_o spirit_n do_v rob_v god_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n who_o will_v not_o that_o any_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n but_o that_o he_o that_o glori_v shall_v glory_v in_o the_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 1.29.3_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n in_o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o second_o some_o will_v object_v why_o do_v god_n take_v this_o pain_n with_o man_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v no_o more_o to_o their_o own_o conversion_n than_o a_o dead_a man_n to_o his_o own_o resurrection_n to_o this_o objection_n i_o have_v already_o give_v a_o answer_n yet_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o add_v this_o to_o what_o have_v be_v already_o speak_v for_o the_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o those_o that_o be_v weak_a though_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o of_o ourselves_o yet_o god_n entreat_v exhort_v and_o beseech_v we_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o in_o jesus_n christ_n because_o in_o exhort_v entreat_v and_o beseech_v of_o we_o to_o believe_v he_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n and_o his_o own_o strength_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v while_o paul_n exhort_v the_o gaoler_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o he_o may_v be_v save_v god_n enable_v the_o gaoler_n to_o believe_v life_n and_o power_n be_v convey_v to_o the_o soul_n in_o gospel_n command_v and_o exhortation_n when_o christ_n raise_v the_o son_n of_o the_o widow_n of_o naim_n to_o life_n luke_n 7.14_o he_o speak_v to_o he_o young_a man_n i_o say_v to_o thou_o arise_z no_o man_n who_o have_v not_o lose_v his_o reason_n will_v conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o young_a man_n that_o be_v dead_a by_o which_o he_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o do_v bid_v he_o arise_v so_o though_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n to_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n and_o bid_v they_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a that_o he_o may_v give_v they_o light_n yet_o we_o can_v conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o man_n by_o which_o they_o do_v believe_v but_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n convey_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n christ_n command_v lazarus_n to_o come_v forth_o but_o he_o come_v not_o forth_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n but_o in_o the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o he_o that_o command_v he_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n so_o we_o command_v man_n to_o come_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n but_o they_o come_v not_o forth_o in_o their_o own_o strength_n but_o in_o the_o power_n and_o
come_v to_o pass_v and_o the_o thing_n foretell_v shall_v not_o come_v to_o pass_v it_o must_v be_v grant_v therefore_o that_o god_n decree_n be_v certain_a irrevocable_a and_o immutable_a and_o that_o god_n work_v according_a to_o these_o decree_n do_v work_v irresistable_o and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v his_o gift_n because_o it_o proceed_v from_o his_o irresistible_a power_n according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o apostle_n it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n three_o darkness_n can_v create_v light_n faith_n be_v a_o spiritual_a light_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v come_v from_o our_o darkness_n but_o must_v have_v its_o birth_n and_o beginning_n from_o some_o heavenly_a light_n and_o god_n be_v the_o powerful_a light_n from_o who_o faith_n be_v beam_v into_o our_o heart_n five_o thing_n be_v require_v to_o see_v 1._o a_o visible_a object_n 2._o the_o organ_n of_o fight_n 3._o a_o light_a to_o discover_v this_o object_n 4._o a_o medium_n through_o which_o this_o object_n be_v to_o be_v see_v 5._o that_o the_o organ_n be_v in_o a_o live_n and_o wake_v creature_n and_o these_o thing_n be_v likewise_o requisite_a to_o see_v a_o thing_n spiritual_o by_o faith_n which_o all_o be_v from_o the_o power_n of_o god_n 1._o it_o be_v god_n do_v present_a do_v we_o the_o spiritual_a object_n which_o be_v to_o be_v look_v upon_o for_o salvation_n 2._o it_o be_v god_n give_v we_o spiritual_a organ_n or_o eye_n 3._o spiritual_a light_n to_o discover_v spiritual_a thing_n 4._o a_o medium_n jesus_n christ_n through_o who_o we_o look_v upon_o he_o 5._o a_o spiritual_a life_n and_o be_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o god_n to_o create_v a_o thing_n out_o of_o nothing_o and_o it_o be_v his_o prerogative_n and_o power_n in_o believe_v to_o make_v we_o new_a creature_n by_o which_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o true_a faith_n can_v be_v of_o ourselves_o but_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n four_o that_o which_o stablish_v saint_n in_o the_o faith_n that_o power_n do_v at_o the_o first_o work_v faith_n in_o they_o but_o god_n by_o his_o power_n do_v establish_v saint_n rom._n 16.25_o the_o apostle_n do_v make_v it_o a_o privilege_n proper_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n to_o establish_v saint_n in_o the_o faith_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o his_o power_n to_o bring_v we_o to_o the_o faith_n five_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n in_o give_v christ_n to_o open_v the_o blind_a eye_n isa_n 42.6_o 7._o his_o engagement_n to_o teach_v we_o to_o know_v he_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n all_o thy_o child_n shall_v be_v teach_v of_o god_n his_o covenant_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o shall_v know_v he_o heb._n 8._o do_v sufficient_o demonstrate_v that_o nothing_o below_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n insufficient_a for_o the_o enable_v of_o we_o to_o rest_v upon_o his_o own_o grace_n for_o salvation_n i_o need_v not_o spend_v many_o word_n in_o prove_v this_o because_o the_o argument_n lay_v down_o to_o prove_v the_o negative_a part_n of_o the_o text_n will_v reach_v the_o affirmative_a for_o if_o not_o of_o ourselves_o it_o will_v unquestionable_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v of_o god_n that_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v prove_v that_o as_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o power_n so_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o free_a grace_n when_o he_o enable_v a_o man_n to_o believe_v he_o put_v forth_o not_o only_o the_o power_n of_o his_o omnipotency_n but_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n he_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o creature_n to_o move_v he_o to_o give_v faith_n to_o the_o creature_n but_o he_o look_v upon_o his_o own_o grace_n and_o he_o see_v no_o other_o motive_n or_o argument_n to_o move_v he_o to_o give_v faith_n to_o man_n but_o those_o that_o lie_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n from_o the_o day_n of_o eternity_n i_o shall_v prove_v this_o first_o by_o scripture_n and_o then_o by_o some_o consideration_n first_o you_o have_v it_o prove_v by_o scripture_n phil._n 1.29_o to_o you_o it_o be_v give_v not_o only_o to_o believe_v but_o to_o suffer_v hence_o i_o gather_v that_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n grace_n to_o enable_v a_o man_n to_o believe_v as_o it_o be_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o god_n grace_n to_o call_v forth_o a_o man_n to_o suffer_v for_o he_o so_o in_o 2_o tim._n 2.25_o the_o apostle_n bid_v timothy_n with_o meekeness_n of_o spirit_n to_o endeavour_v to_o recover_v those_o that_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n and_o truth_n which_o he_o hold_v forth_o and_o preach_v if_o peradventure_o god_n will_v give_v they_o repentance_n for_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o truth_n you_o see_v then_o god_n must_v give_v repentance_n or_o changednesse_n of_o mind_n by_o which_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v truth_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n now_o as_o i_o have_v clear_v it_o by_o scripture_n so_o i_o shall_v clear_v it_o by_o some_o consideration_n the_o first_o shall_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n the_o promise_n as_o they_o do_v prove_v that_o man_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n by_o his_o own_o power_n but_o that_o all_o be_v do_v for_o we_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n so_o they_o prove_v that_o all_o be_v do_v for_o our_o spiritual_a good_a by_o grace_n for_o promise_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n do_v not_o only_o acquaint_v we_o with_o the_o power_n but_o grace_n of_o god_n if_o adam_n have_v be_v preserve_v in_o his_o obedience_n and_o never_o have_v fall_v he_o have_v be_v preserve_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o not_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o grace_n be_v strict_o take_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n so_o that_o as_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o from_o the_o power_n of_o god_n by_o lead_v you_o to_o the_o promise_n so_o now_o we_o shall_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n by_o bring_v you_o back_o again_o to_o look_v upon_o promise_n as_o they_o be_v the_o stream_n &_o flow_n forth_o of_o god_n grace_n unto_o we_o what_o need_n god_n promise_v to_o do_v that_o which_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v of_o ourselves_o therefore_o see_v we_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o grace_n for_o it_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n &_o not_o by_o any_o power_n in_o ourselves_o rom._n 15.12_o we_o have_v a_o promise_n for_o faith_n in_o he_o speak_v of_o christ_n shall_v the_o gentile_n trust_v so_o likewise_o in_o jerem._n 24.7_o we_o have_v a_o promise_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o the_o knowledge_n of_o himself_o i_o will_v give_v they_o a_o heart_n to_o know_v i_o that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n and_o i_o will_v be_v their_o god_n and_o they_o shall_v return_v unto_o i_o with_o their_o whole_a heart_n here_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o give_v we_o a_o heart_n that_o we_o shall_v know_v he_o now_o see_v god_n have_v promise_v to_o give_v we_o a_o heart_n to_o know_v he_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v such_o a_o heart_n to_o ourselves_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o circumcise_v our_o heart_n to_o take_v away_o the_o foreskin_n of_o our_o spirit_n therefore_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o circumcise_v ourselves_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o turn_v we_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o turn_v ourselves_o turn_v we_o o_o lord_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v turn_v lam._n 5.21_o intimate_v thus_o much_o that_o we_o can_v come_v towards_o he_o till_o he_o turn_v the_o face_n and_o countenance_n of_o his_o favour_n towards_o we_o answer_v to_o that_o in_o jer._n 31.18_o i_o have_v sure_o hear_v ephraim_n bemoan_v himself_o thou_o have_v chastise_v i_o and_o i_o be_v chastise_v as_o a_o bullock_n unaccustomed_a to_o the_o yoke_n turn_v thou_o i_o and_o i_o shall_v he_o turn_v and_o therefore_o god_n do_v usual_o mix_v promise_n with_o exhortation_n that_o man_n shall_v not_o conclude_v from_o god_n exhortation_n unto_o he_o that_o there_o be_v a_o sufficient_a power_n in_o he_o to_o do_v what_o he_o be_v exhort_v to_o do_v as_o in_o hosea_n 14._o when_o he_o have_v exhort_v israel_n to_o return_v unto_o the_o lord_n he_o present_o add_v vers_fw-la 4._o i_o will_v heal_v their_o backeslide_n all_o the_o prophet_n do_v subscribe_v to_o this_o truth_n jona_n 2.9_o salvation_n be_v of_o the_o lord_n by_o promise_n he_o will_v teach_v we_o his_o way_n and_o we_o will_v walk_v in_o his_o path_n say_v micab_n mic._n 4.2_o and_o zeph._n 3.12_o i_o will_v leave_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o thou_o a_o afflict_a and_o poor_a people_n and_o they_o shall_v trust_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o
do_v evil_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o that_o do_v good_a be_v first_o bear_v of_o god_n and_o receive_v of_o his_o nature_n and_o seed_n and_o by_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o nature_n and_o seed_n be_v first_o good_a before_o they_o do_v good_a by_o the_o same_o rule_n and_o christ_n who_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o devil_n come_v to_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o we_o and_o to_o give_v we_o a_o new_a birth_n a_o new_a nature_n and_o to_o sow_v new_a seed_n in_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v by_o reason_n of_o that_o birth_n sin_n no_o more_o and_o he_o have_v a_o parallel_n place_n to_o this_o in_o the_o same_o exposition_n of_o this_o epistle_n as_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n say_v he_o in_o christ_n the_o stock_n so_o can_v there_o be_v none_o in_o the_o quick_a member_n that_o live_v and_o grow_v in_o he_o by_o faith_n calvin_n in_o his_o instruction_n against_o the_o libertine_n bring_v in_o this_o place_n of_o john_n as_o a_o argument_n of_o they_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o do_v never_o sin_v do_v answer_v they_o by_o this_o exposition_n of_o the_o word_n john_n word_n do_v signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o this_o that_o a_o man_n as_o far_o as_o he_o be_v regenerate_v of_o god_n can_v sin_v johannis_n verba_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la significant_a quam_fw-la hominem_fw-la quatenus_fw-la regeneratus_fw-la est_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la non_fw-la peccare_fw-la i_o may_v multiply_v author_n speak_v sometime_o to_o this_o purpose_n but_o for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v not_o approve_v this_o way_n of_o preach_v or_o frequent_a quote_v of_o author_n in_o sermon_n yet_o sometime_o i_o be_o necessitate_v unto_o it_o and_o for_o the_o hardness_n of_o heart_n of_o hearer_n do_v think_v that_o something_o may_v be_v do_v in_o this_o way_n for_o the_o gain_n of_o they_o in_o unto_o truth_n as_o amesius_n do_v deliver_v his_o judgement_n in_o his_o case_n of_o conscience_n but_o second_o i_o must_v profess_v ingenuous_o that_o most_o man_n who_o i_o may_v bring_v in_o to_o speak_v to_o this_o truth_n do_v seem_v to_o contradict_v in_o other_o place_n of_o their_o writing_n what_o they_o have_v deliver_v concern_v this_o truth_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v only_o bring_v scripture_n to_o prove_v what_o i_o do_v desire_n to_o descend_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n know_v that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a of_o itself_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o truth_n and_o that_o the_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n of_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v be_v nothing_o at_o all_o without_o it_o as_o david_n say_v of_o the_o sword_n of_o goliath_n 1_o sam._n 21.9_o there_o be_v none_o like_o that_o so_o no_o sword_n or_o bow_n of_o man_n be_v like_a unto_o the_o scripture_n by_o which_o error_n be_v hew_v down_o and_o truth_n exalt_v wherefore_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o more_o full_o my_o plain_a and_o naked_a meaning_n in_o this_o point_n and_o then_o shall_v show_v you_o what_o scripture_n will_v come_v in_o to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o truth_n which_o i_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n first_o we_o be_v to_o take_v notice_n that_o man_n in_o scripture_n be_v consider_v physical_o as_o he_o have_v a_o rational_a spirit_n join_v to_o a_o humane_a body_n and_o when_o we_o thus_o speak_v of_o man_n we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o every_o man_n sin_v lot_n david_n peter_n paul_n and_o the_o like_a according_a to_o that_o of_o james_n jam._n 3.2_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o second_o we_o may_v look_v upon_o man_n theological_o and_o if_o we_o thus_o consider_v he_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n every_o christian_a man_n have_v two_o man_n in_o he_o a_o new_a man_n and_z and_z a_o old_a man_n and_o these_o two_o of_o contrary_a nature_n and_o operation_n and_o as_o sometime_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o man_n as_o have_v two_o physical_a being_n in_o he_o and_o do_v attribute_n unto_o he_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o his_o corporal_a and_o spiritual_a part_n as_o when_o we_o say_v a_o man_n hear_v see_v walk_v understand_v and_o the_o like_a and_o then_o again_o do_v distinguish_v these_o two_o attribute_v to_o the_o body_n what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o body_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n what_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o soul_n so_o sometime_o the_o scripture_n do_v speak_v of_o man_n as_o have_v two_o contrary_a nature_n and_o then_o do_v again_o attribute_v that_o to_o the_o new_a or_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o that_o and_o that_o unto_o the_o sinful_a and_o fleshly_a nature_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o it_o in_o the_o old_a and_o unregenerate_v nature_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n and_o the_o seed_n and_o spawn_n of_o all_o filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n and_o in_o the_o regenerate_v part_n or_o new_a man_n there_o be_v nothing_o but_o purity_n and_o holiness_n in_o this_o nature_n he_o do_v no_o sin_n nor_o can_v sin_v as_o he_o can_v do_v good_a it_o the_o other_o nature_n so_o that_o i_o apprehend_v that_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v not_o sinful_a in_o his_o nature_n or_o in_o any_o of_o his_o act_n working_n or_o operation_n he_o be_v light_a in_o his_o understanding_n holy_a in_o his_o will_n pure_a in_o his_o thought_n sanctify_v in_o his_o affection_n it_o be_v well_o observe_v by_o bullinger_n that_o god_n do_v allude_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o seed_n the_o nature_n of_o which_o be_v retain_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o spring_v out_o of_o it_o alludit_fw-la ad_fw-la seminis_fw-la naturam_fw-la quamea_fw-la referunt_fw-la quae_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la nascuntur_fw-la the_o seed_n be_v holy_a that_o which_o arise_v from_o it_o be_v likewise_o holy_a as_o our_o saviour_n do_v inform_v we_o john_n 3.6_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n be_v flesh_n and_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n i●_n spirit_n not_o that_o the_o newborn_a man_n be_v whole_o turn_v into_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n and_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o spirit_n as_o some_o delude_v and_o delude_a spirit_n have_v affirm_v but_o the_o abstract_n be_v take_v for_o the_o concrete_a which_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o scripture_n that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v say_v to_o be_v spirit_n because_o it_o be_v make_v spiritual_a by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o it_o have_v acquaint_v you_o with_o my_o meaning_n and_o give_v you_o the_o spiritual_a interpretation_n of_o the_o word_n i_o shall_v draw_v the_o marrow_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o particular_n which_o i_o name_v into_o one_o conclusion_n which_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v good_a by_o spiritual_a argument_n which_o i_o shall_v draw_v from_o scripture_n and_o spiritual_a reason_n the_o conclusion_n be_v this_o the_o spiritual_a man_n or_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n in_o his_o spiritual_a and_o godly_a nature_n motion_n &_o act_n towards_o god_n in_o christ_n do_v not_o nor_o can_v sin_v arg._n 1._o his_o seed_n be_v holy_a in_o he_o therefore_o his_o fruit_n be_v holy_a this_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o apostle_n his_o seed_n abide_v in_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o can_v sin_v christ_n be_v the_o seed_n in_o we_o 1_o pet._n 1.23_o every_o true_a christian_a can_v say_v with_o paul_n gal._n 2.20_o that_o christ_n live_v in_o he_o and_o christ_n in_o we_o do_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o live_v sinful_o but_o make_v we_o to_o live_v holy_o he_o become_v the_o principle_n of_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o sanctification_n in_o we_o a_o christian_a be_v powerful_o act_v by_o a_o holy_a principle_n and_o therefore_o his_o act_n be_v holy_a christ_n be_v a_o pure_a fountain_n of_o holiness_n in_o we_o as_o well_o to_o fill_v our_o soul_n with_o the_o stream_n of_o holiness_n by_o the_o spirit_n as_o to_o wash_v away_o the_o uncleaness_n of_o our_o soul_n in_o our_o justification_n and_o this_o sountaine_n can_v send_v forth_o at_o the_o same_o place_n sweet_a water_n and_o bitter_a jam._n 3.11_o the_o stream_n do_v retain_v the_o pure_a nature_n of_o the_o fountain_n from_o whence_o they_o flow_v reader_n i_o must_v inform_v thou_o that_o since_o i_o preach_v this_o sermon_n i_o receive_v objection_n from_o my_o learned_a friend_n mr._n r._n l._n against_o my_o argument_n which_o i_o think_v good_a to_o print_v with_o my_o argument_n ob._n against_o this_o argument_n this_o be_v object_v the_o argument_n from_o the_o seed_n to_o the_o fruit_n will_v not_o follow_v unless_o the_o soil_n be_v also_o answerable_a otherwise_o sorry_a fruit_n may_v come_v from_o good_a seed_n answ_n as_o there_o be_v good_a seed_n so_o there_o be_v a_o good_a soil_n the_o spiritual_a heart_n and_o therefore_o the_o argument_n will_v follow_v this_o i_o prove_v ezek._n 36.26_o
a_o new_a heart_n will_v i_o give_v you_o and_o a_o new_a spirit_n will_v i_o put_v within_o you_o and_o i_o will_v take_v away_o the_o stony_a heart_n out_o of_o your_o flesh_n and_o will_v give_v you_o a_o heart_n of_o flesh_n and_o i_o will_v put_v my_o spirit_n within_o you_o and_o cause_v you_o to_o walk_v in_o my_o statute_n and_o you_o shall_v keep_v my_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o the_o new_a heart_n of_o flesh_n be_v a_o good_a soil_n and_o because_o god_n do_v promise_v his_o spirit_n and_o a_o new_a heart_n therefore_o see_v what_o shall_v follow_v the_o good_a fruit_n speak_v of_o we_o shall_v keep_v his_o judgement_n and_o do_v they_o arg._n 2._o god_n can_v be_v the_o author_n &_o worker_n of_o that_o which_o be_v sin_n but_o god_n do_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o good_a work_n wrought_v in_o the_o saint_n and_o therefore_o these_o work_n be_v not_o sin_n isa_n 26.12_o the_o saint_n do_v profess_v that_o god_n have_v wrought_v all_o their_o work_n in_o they_o and_o this_o likewise_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o do_v prove_v that_o do_n of_o evil_a be_v sin_n because_o it_o be_v of_o the_o devil_n and_o that_o work_n of_o righteousness_n be_v good_a because_o it_o be_v of_o god_n object_n these_o thing_n be_v not_o sin_n in_o their_o whole_a moral_a nature_n but_o per_fw-la accidens_fw-la by_o accident_n through_o the_o defect_n of_o some_o circumstance_n answ_n every_o moral_a action_n command_v or_o forbid_v of_o god_n be_v either_o good_a or_o evil_a if_o these_o be_v good_a and_o no_o sin_n than_o i_o have_v what_o i_o contend_v for_o if_o evil_a acquit_v god_n from_o be_v the_o author_n of_o evil_a who_o do_v profess_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o these_o thing_n in_o opposition_n to_o satan_n and_o his_o work_n if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o good_a nor_o evil_a or_o both_o good_a and_o evil_a and_o prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n i_o shall_v hearken_v unto_o you_o but_o you_o say_v they_o be_v sin_n by_o accident_n and_o if_o they_o be_v so_o by_o accident_n they_o be_v sin_n and_o still_o you_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n but_o i_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o sin_n in_o their_o nature_n nor_o by_o accident_n but_o good_a and_o therefore_o until_o you_o prove_v what_o you_o say_v i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o that_o my_o argument_n be_v unshaken_a by_o this_o objection_n object_n 2._o faith_n and_o love_n in_o their_o whole_a moral_a abstract_n nature_n be_v not_o sin_n but_o consider_v in_o the_o concrete_a and_o act_v by_o we_o answ_n the_o apostle_n do_v speak_v of_o they_o in_o the_o concrete_a as_o act_v by_o we_o and_o do_v bid_v we_o try_v ourselves_o by_o our_o faith_n love_n and_o work_v of_o righteousness_n and_o say_v vers_fw-la 19_o that_o hereby_o we_o assure_v ourselves_o before_o god_n therefore_o this_o distinction_n be_v of_o no_o validity_n in_o this_o place_n though_o some_o think_v that_o it_o will_v answer_v all_o our_o argument_n argu._n 3_o the_o old_a man_n and_o the_o new_a man_n be_v distinguish_v by_o their_o contrary_a nature_n and_o operation_n but_o if_o the_o new_a man_n be_v sinful_a and_o his_o operation_n sinful_a the_o new_a man_n will_v be_v confound_v with_o the_o old_a man_n who_o be_v sinful_a in_o himself_o and_o his_o operation_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o scripture_n the_o old_a man_n be_v corrupt_v according_a to_o deceitful_a lust_n but_o the_o new_a man_n after_o god_n be_v create_v in_o righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n eph._n 4.22.24_o and_o speak_v of_o these_o in_o the_o concrete_a as_o in_o we_o eph._n 5.8_o 9_o he_o say_v to_o they_o you_o be_v sometime_o darkness_n but_o now_o be_v you_o light_v in_o the_o lord_n walk_v as_o child_n of_o the_o light_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v in_o all_o goodness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o truth_n argu._n 4._o those_o work_n which_o be_v commend_v by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o good_a work_n be_v good_a work_n but_o the_o work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v commend_v for_o good_a work_n therefore_o they_o be_v good_a revel_v 2.2_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o he_o know_v the_o work_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o his_o labour_n and_o patience_n that_o be_v he_o approve_v or_o commend_v his_o work_n and_o so_o rev._n 3.8_o it_o will_v be_v a_o disparagement_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n to_o commend_v sin_n or_o sinful_a work_n for_o good_a work_n and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v good_a work_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o the_o work_v which_o be_v wrought_v by_o a_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v good_a work_n obj._n they_o be_v wash_v from_o their_o pollution_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb._n answ_n when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o new_a man_n and_o his_o work_n we_o look_v not_o upon_o he_o or_o his_o work_n but_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v wash_v from_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o we_o be_v well_o please_v unto_o god_n the_o worker_n through_o jesus_n christ_n through_o who_o he_o do_v work_v they_o in_o we_o arg._n 5._o christ_n do_v not_o present_a that_o which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a to_o the_o father_n to_o be_v accept_v but_o he_o presentech_v our_o work_n 1_o pet._n 2.5_o we_o offer_v up_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o jesus_n christ_n if_o christ_n do_v present_v any_o work_n that_o be_v sinful_a he_o may_v present_v our_o sinful_a work_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o there_o be_v something_o which_o be_v good_a which_o be_v present_v as_o well_o as_o something_o in_o we_o which_o be_v sinful_a which_o be_v forgive_v malum_fw-la ex_fw-la quolibet_fw-la desectu_fw-la the_o less_o defect_n do_v make_v a_o thing_n evil_a and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o defect_n in_o the_o work_n of_o the_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n to_o make_v it_o sin_n and_o evil_a what_o reason_n can_v any_o man_n give_v from_o scripture_n why_o every_o sin_n shall_v not_o be_v present_v and_o accept_v as_o well_o as_o those_o sin_n which_o they_o call_v good_a work_n arg._n 6._o the_o scripture_n call_v the_o work_n of_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n neither_o sinful_a or_o sin_n but_o work_n of_o righteousness_n faith_n be_v call_v righteousness_n rom._n 4._o and_o rom._n 5._o &_o the_o last_o paul_n call_v the_o sincerity_n which_o be_v in_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o in_o the_o concrete_a godly_a sincerity_n 2_o cor._n 1.12_o paul_n pray_v that_o grace_n may_v be_v with_o all_o they_o who_o love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o corruption_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v he_o pray_v for_o such_o who_o he_o think_v be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v or_o for_o all_o true_a saint_n who_o he_o do_v know_v do_v love_v the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o incorruption_n reply_n if_o they_o be_v consider_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v so_o they_o be_v not_o evil_a but_o as_o they_o be_v do_v by_o we_o so_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o call_v they_o menstruous_a rag_n even_o our_o very_a righteousness_n not_o our_o old_a man_n only_o isa_n 64.6_o answ_n the_o prophet_n do_v not_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o a_o man_n under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n consider_v under_o that_o covenant_n for_o in_o the_o precedent_a verse_n he_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o such_o a_o man_n be_v not_o as_o a_o menstruous_a rag_n thou_o meet_v he_o that_o rejoy_v and_o work_v righteousness_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o man_n as_o look_v upon_o under_o the_o old_a covenant_n and_o of_o their_o work_n as_o do_v under_o and_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o that_o covenant_n which_o appear_v by_o the_o follow_a word_n our_o iniquity_n like_o the_o wind_n have_v take_v we_o away_o and_o there_o be_v none_o that_o call_v upon_o thy_o name_n that_o stir_v up_o himself_o to_o take_v hold_n of_o thou_o for_o thou_o have_v hide_v thy_o face_n from_o we_o and_o we_o be_v consume_v because_o of_o our_o iniquity_n we_o must_v not_o judge_v of_o this_o truth_n by_o expression_n which_o holy_a man_n have_v make_v use_n of_o in_o confess_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o jewish_a national_a covenant_n but_o by_o those_o passage_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o god_n do_v speak_v of_o a_o man_n as_o under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n with_o his_o work_n wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n 7_o arg._n god_n do_v remember_v the_o work_n of_o his_o saint_n heb._n 6.10_o god_n be_v not_o unrighteous_a to_o forget_v your_o work_n and_o labour_n of_o
love_n say_v the_o apostle_n he_o will_v remember_v the_o good_a work_n of_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o judgement_n the_o good_a work_n of_o some_o be_v manifest_a beforehand_o and_o they_o that_o be_v otherwise_o can_v be_v hide_v 1_o tim._n 5.15_o they_o can_v for_o ever_o be_v hide_v because_o god_n will_v make_v mention_n of_o they_o at_o that_o day_n but_o he_o have_v engage_v himself_o by_o oath_n to_o remember_v our_o sin_n and_o sinful_a action_n hebr._n 8._o and_o therefore_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spiritual_a man_n be_v not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a arg._n 8._o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o the_o work_n of_o a_o spiritual_a man_n or_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o sin_n because_o where_o there_o be_v no_o law_n there_o be_v no_o transgression_n but_o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o these_o this_o be_v plain_a by_o that_o passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 5.22_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v love_n joy_n peace_n long-suffering_a gentleness_n goodness_n faith_n meekness_n temperance_n against_o such_o there_o be_v no_o law_n object_n they_o be_v here_o consider_v as_o they_o be_v precise_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v by_o we_o and_o so_o they_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o consider_v they_o as_o act_v by_o we_o even_o with_o the_o spirit_n assistance_n and_o so_o they_o be_v defective_a and_o sinful_a answ_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o tully_n of_o his_o orator_n plato_n of_o his_o commonwealth_n &_o moor_n of_o his_o utopia_n as_o of_o thing_n no_o where_n to_o be_v find_v but_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n as_o in_o we_o and_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o as_o in_o we_o and_o do_v plain_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o we_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o law_n against_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n hereafter_o to_o speak_v more_o full_o of_o some_o place_n where_o the_o apostle_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n do_v speak_v plain_o of_o these_o work_v as_o do_v in_o we_o that_o so_o i_o may_v break_v the_o neck_n of_o this_o distinction_n which_o be_v make_v as_o a_o catholicon_n or_o salve_v for_o every_o sore_a arg._n 9_o god_n do_v give_v a_o testimony_n concern_v his_o saint_n that_o they_o be_v righteous_a and_o holy_a which_o be_v speak_v in_o reference_n to_o their_o spiritual_a nature_n and_o act_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v righteous_a and_o holy_a the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v according_a to_o truth_n he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o truth_n do_v not_o god_n give_v this_o testimony_n of_o job_n job_n 1.1_o that_o he_o be_v a_o perfect_a man_n and_o upright_o one_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o eschew_v evil_a and_o though_o man_n may_v oppose_v this_o yet_o it_o feem_v by_o god_n speech_n to_o satan_n that_o the_o devil_n can_v not_o contradict_v it_o job_n 2.3_o and_o the_o lord_n say_v unto_o satan_n have_v thou_o consider_v my_o servant_n job_n that_o there_o be_v none_o like_o he_o in_o the_o earth_n a_o perfect_a man_n &_o upright_o one_o that_o fear_v god_n and_o eschew_v evil_a do_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a procure_v this_o honourable_a title_n to_o david_n that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n 1_o sam._n 13.14_o do_v not_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n inform_v we_o concern_v zacharias_n and_o elizabeth_n his_o wife_n that_o they_o be_v both_o righteous_a before_o god_n walk_v in_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n blameless_a luke_n 1.6_o they_o do_v not_o only_o walk_v in_o the_o great_a commandment_n of_o god_n concern_v faith_n for_o justification_n but_o in_o all_o the_o ordinance_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n be_v not_o lot_n call_v a_o just_a and_o righteous_a man_n who_o be_v vex_v with_o the_o filthy_a conversation_n of_o the_o wicked_a 2_o pet._n 2.7_o and_o be_v his_o sinful_a soul_n vex_v with_o their_o evil_a deed_n or_o his_o righteous_a soul_n speak_v in_o the_o language_n of_o god_n word_n and_o you_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v his_o righteous_a soul_n vers_fw-la 8._o god_n be_v not_o like_a unto_o some_o indulgent_a parent_n who_o by_o their_o fond_a indulgency_n do_v account_v that_o to_o be_v a_o virtue_n which_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o their_o child_n and_o they_o to_o be_v virtuous_a who_o be_v vile_a god_n call_v nothing_o righteousness_n which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a nor_o those_o to_o be_v perfect_a and_o upright_o which_o be_v not_o so_o indeed_o and_o therefore_o see_v god_n do_v call_v his_o child_n righteous_a holy_a and_o perfect_a we_o may_v not_o be_v afraid_a to_o call_v they_o so_o unless_o we_o will_v be_v afraid_a to_o follow_v his_o judgement_n object_n they_o be_v righteous_a before_o god_n by_o justification_n and_o before_o man_n by_o holy_a walk_n ans_fw-fr we_o deny_v not_o their_o justification_n before_o god_n by_o faith_n but_o with_o all_o we_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v righteous_a before_o he_o by_o their_o holy_a walking_n as_o these_o place_n do_v sufficient_o prove_v with_o other_o which_o we_o shall_v hereafter_o speak_v of_o let_v we_o not_o delude_v ous_a soul_n to_o think_v that_o righteousness_n &_o sanctification_n be_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n only_o the_o pure_a sanctification_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v not_o so_o visible_a to_o man_n as_o unto_o god_n pure_a religion_n and_o undefiled_a before_o god_n and_o the_o father_n be_v this_o to_o visit_v the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n in_o their_o affliction_n and_o to_o keep_v himself_o unspotted_a from_o the_o world_n which_o will_v be_v further_o manifest_v by_o our_o next_o argument_n arg._n 10._o almighty_a god_n be_v a_o god_n of_o pure_a eye_n who_o can_v behold_v any_o iniquity_n any_o sinful_a thing_n or_o sin_n with_o a_o eye_n of_o approbation_n but_o this_o god_n who_o can_v approve_v what_o be_v sin_n and_o sinful_a this_o god_n approve_v and_o profess_v that_o he_o be_v well_o please_v with_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o saint_n therefore_o the_o performance_n of_o the_o saint_n can_v be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a the_o apostle_n in_o philip._n 4.18_o profess_v that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o philippian_n in_o send_v to_o relieve_v his_o want_n be_v a_o odour_n of_o a_o sweet_a smell_n a_o sacrifice_n acceptable_a well_o please_v to_o god_n god_n have_v pure_a eye_n and_o pure_a nostril_n and_o therefore_o if_o it_o have_v be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a it_o can_v not_o have_v please_v his_o eye_n nor_o have_v be_v a_o odour_n of_o a_o sweet_a smell_n unto_o his_o nostril_n object_n they_o be_v so_o but_o not_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n answ_n if_o they_o be_v not_o so_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n they_o be_v filthy_a and_o odious_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o yet_o accept_v by_o grace_n if_o one_o thing_n which_o be_v filthy_a and_o odious_a in_o its_o own_o nature_n be_v accept_v why_o shall_v not_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v filthy_a and_o odious_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v accept_v for_o good_a work_n if_o this_o can_v be_v make_v good_a whoredom_n and_o adultery_n will_v prove_v good_a work_n which_o have_v be_v assert_v by_o some_o who_o have_v say_v that_o the_o filthiness_n of_o whoredom_n be_v do_v away_o the_o action_n be_v well-pleasing_a to_o almighty_a god_n as_o well_o as_o any_o good_a work_n arg._n 11._o one_o end_n and_o intention_n of_o god_n in_o elect_v of_o we_o be_v that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o holy_a that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o good_a tree_n to_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n though_o god_n do_v not_o elect_v we_o because_o we_o do_v believe_v or_o because_o we_o do_v love_n yet_o he_o have_v elect_v we_o that_o we_o may_v believe_v and_o that_o we_o may_v love_v so_o that_o we_o frustrate_v one_o end_n that_o god_n have_v in_o elect_v we_o if_o we_o do_v not_o grant_v that_o god_n give_v we_o a_o new_a nature_n and_o new_a heart_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n 2_o thes_n 2_o 13._o we_o be_v choose_v unto_o salvation_n through_o sanctification_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o in_o eph_n 1.4_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o in_o he_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o love_n object_n we_o do_v apprehend_v our_o election_n imperfect_o which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o sinfulness_n of_o our_o work_n answ_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n we_o can_v so_o perfect_o see_v our_o election_n as_o we_o shall_v do_v hereafter_o yet_o in_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o present_a we_o do_v so_o full_o apprehend_v it_o
his_o command_n the_o fail_v be_v not_o from_o the_o new_a but_o the_o old_a man_n the_o whole_a man_n or_o person_n be_v under_o the_o command_n so_o that_o a_o man_n yea_o every_o man_n do_v sin_n because_o he_o do_v not_o do_v in_o his_o person_n as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n what_o be_v command_v charge_v the_o fault_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v charge_v upon_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o man_n sin_n and_o then_o look_v upon_o grace_n which_o have_v abolish_v sin_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o new_a man_n conformable_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o man_n good_a and_o holy_a in_o part_n to_o wit_n in_o his_o regenerate_v part_n it_o be_v further_a object_v that_o christ_n bid_v we_o to_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n which_o no_o man_n do_v it_o be_v grant_v and_o therefore_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o every_o man_n sin_v if_o we_o take_v he_o physical_o but_o as_o far_o as_o we_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v cleanse_v from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n so_o that_o the_o new_a man_n do_v fulfil_v it_o and_o christ_n do_v reign_v in_o he_o though_o the_o flesh_n prove_v a_o traitor_n and_o rebellious_a against_o his_o command_n arg._n 18._o another_o argument_n may_v be_v bring_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v in_o their_o formality_n sin_n this_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o image_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o image_n of_o unholinesse_n and_o sin_n i_o ground_n my_o argument_n upon_o that_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o we_o all_o with_o open_a face_n behold_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n even_o as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n here_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o the_o saint_n be_v change_v into_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n now_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n and_o unholinesse_n &_o sinfulness_n in_o those_o who_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o spiritual_a as_o some_o conceive_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n into_o which_o they_o be_v change_v must_v be_v a_o image_n of_o unholinesse_n if_o my_o love_n be_v unholinesse_n i_o be_o change_v to_o that_o image_n of_o love_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o so_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n do_v consist_v in_o unholinesse_n object_n if_o there_o be_v perfect_a sanctification_n in_o the_o new_a man_n than_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o it_o answ_n i_o deny_v that_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v we_o shall_v have_v perfect_a sanctification_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o yet_o you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v acquit_v from_o our_o sin_n by_o it_o which_o we_o have_v commit_v upon_o earth_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 2._o we_o be_v justify_v before_o sancification_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o because_o that_o be_v do_v before_o the_o other_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o 3._o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v justify_v by_o his_o sanctification_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o whole_o sanctify_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o sin_n in_o the_o man_n our_o good_a work_n will_v not_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o our_o bad_a work_n a_o traitor_n for_o a_o act_n of_o treason_n may_v be_v condemn_v by_o his_o prince_n though_o he_o have_v do_v he_o much_o good_a service_n if_o a_o man_n will_v seek_v justification_n by_o the_o law_n who_o be_v sanctify_v in_o part_n the_o law_n will_v condemn_v he_o for_o his_o sin_n in_o his_o unregenerate_v part_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o any_o sufficiency_n in_o his_o sanctification_n to_o free_v he_o from_o condemnation_n for_o his_o sin_n in_o the_o unregenerate_v part_n arg._n 19_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o justify_v man_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a do_v make_v divers_a place_n of_o scripture_n irreconcilable_a man_n shall_v never_o be_v well_o able_a to_o reconcile_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n who_o swallow_v this_o as_o a_o truth_n that_o whatsoever_o work_n be_v now_o do_v in_o the_o saint_n be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n or_o sinful_a for_o instance_n in_o one_o place_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o disclaim_v our_o work_n and_o to_o account_v all_o our_o righteousness_n as_o filthy_a rag_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a and_o in_o another_o place_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v redeem_v from_o all_o iniquity_n that_o we_o may_v be_v zealous_a of_o good_a work_n tit._n 2._o and_o we_o be_v the_o work_n manship_n of_o god_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n to_o good_a work_n eph._n 2._o by_o what_o i_o have_v deliver_v they_o be_v easy_o reconcileable_a to_o wit_n by_o distinguish_v as_o the_o scripture_n do_v concern_v good_a work_n thus_o that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o man_n under_o the_o law_n be_v but_o splendid_a and_o shine_a sin_n and_o that_o the_o spiritual_a work_n of_o a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v good_a and_o not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a in_o their_o nature_n not_o that_o the_o scripture_n make_v these_o good_a work_n that_o flow_v from_o the_o spiritual_a man_n the_o cause_n or_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o consequent_n of_o our_o justification●_n it_o be_v a_o speech_n of_o luther_n worthy_a to_o be_v writte●_n in_o letter_n of_o gold_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o all_o the_o riches_n of_o it_o be_v of_o no_o worth_n in_o comparison_n of_o good_a work_n flow_v from_o faith_n and_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n which_o how_o it_o can_v be_v make_v good_a i_o know_v not_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o he_o and_o some_o other_o protestant_a writer_n affirm_v that_o omn●_fw-la bonum_fw-la secundum_fw-la judicium_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la mortale_fw-la peccatum_fw-la every_o good_a work_n of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n that_o which_o be_v moral_o evil_a be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o moral_o evil_a that_o be_v the_o great_a evil_n which_o be_v moral_o evil_a i_o have_v know_v some_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o have_v fall_v to_o familisme_n and_o atheistical_a opinion_n and_o be_v ask_v why_o they_o do_v leave_v the_o gospel_n they_o have_v answer_v that_o they_o can_v never_o reconcile_v the_o scripture_n concern_v work_n to_o other_o place_n while_o they_o be_v professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n their_o meaning_n be_v while_o they_o be_v professor_n upon_o these_o principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v teach_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o as_o sin_n and_o sinful_a that_o which_o be_v frequent_o assert_v by_o some_o mr._n eatoon_n honycomb_n and_o other_o that_o they_o be_v good_a to_o men-ward_n will_v not_o make_v up_o the_o breach_n the_o apostle_n peter_n speak_v of_o a_o meek_a &_o quiet_a spirit_n which_o be_v the_o ornament_n of_o the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o great_a price_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 3.4_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o his_o sincerity_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 2.17_o and_o john_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3.22_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o ask_v we_o receive_v of_o he_o because_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a believe_v only_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o next_o verse_n where_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v his_o commandment_n that_o we_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o love_v one_o another_o and_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o objection_n which_o be_v usual_o bring_v against_o this_o truth_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o do_v as_o in_o god_n precept_n or_o command_v and_o not_o as_o do_v by_o we_o he_o say_v that_o we_o receive_v what_o we_o ask_v because_o we_o do_v what_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n i_o must_v profess_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o this_o distinction_n have_v give_v i_o a_o great_a light_n in_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o this_o i_o be_o inform_v that_o i_o be_o justify_v without_o holiness_n or_o sanctification_n and_o yet_o that_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n heb._n 12.14_o arg._n 20._o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o good_a work_n
confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o give_v a_o answer_n to_o their_o argument_n as_o i_o have_v already_o present_v unto_o you_o answer_v to_o their_o objection_n arg._n 1._o paul_n be_v a_o regenerate_v man_n yet_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a rom._n 7.18_o therefore_o not_o regenerate_v man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a answ_n paul_n do_v give_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o this_o objection_n in_o the_o precede_a word_n of_o the_o same_o verse_n where_o he_o say_v in_o i_o that_o be_v in_o my_o flesh_n dwell_v no_o good_a thing_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o speak_v of_o himself_o in_o reference_n to_o his_o flesh_n and_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n which_o with_o all_o the_o faithful_a i_o willing_o subscribe_v unto_o but_o when_o he_o plain_o speak_v of_o a_o man_n in_o the_o spirit_n free_v from_o the_o cloud_n of_o temptation_n and_o power_n of_o the_o flesh_n in_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o say_v with_o the_o mind_n i_o myself_o serve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o with_o the_o flesh_n the_o law_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v good_a to_o serve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o paul_n in_o the_o spirit_n have_v attain_v unto_o this_o and_o therefore_o paul_n be_v enable_v to_o perform_v that_o which_o be_v good_a according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n phil._n 2.13_o it_o be_v god_n who_o work_v in_o we_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v of_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n arg._n 2._o there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o rom._n 3.9_o 10_o 11._o which_o be_v mean_v aswell_o of_o the_o regenerate_a as_o unregenerate_a as_o be_v evident_a by_o vers_n 23_o 24._o because_o it_o be_v mean_v of_o all_o who_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n as_o appear_v further_a by_o the_o instance_n of_o abraham_n and_o david_n which_o be_v regenerate_v ch._n 4.2.6_o therefore_o no_o work_n of_o the_o regenerate_a be_v without_o sin_n answ_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v here_o of_o a_o man_n under_o the_o law_n and_o of_o a_o unregenerate_a man_n by_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o he_o he_o say_v that_o none_o seek_v after_o god_n can_v you_o affirm_v this_o of_o a_o regenerate_v man_n when_o the_o same_o prophet_n who_o in_o the_o 14._o psame_n do_v give_v we_o a_o character_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n out_o of_o which_o this_o be_v take_v in_o the_o 24._o psalm_n do_v give_v we_o this_o character_n of_o a_o man_n true_o godly_a that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o generation_n of_o those_o who_o seek_v god_n 2._o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o there_o be_v none_o that_o understand_v but_o bless_v be_v god_n the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o 3._o they_o be_v all_o go_v out_o of_o the_o way_n but_o we_o can_v bless_v god_n who_o through_o jesus_n christ_n have_v bring_v we_o into_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n 4._o there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o and_o there_o be_v none_o that_o be_v righteous_a but_o harken_v unto_o the_o speech_n of_o john_n 1_o john_n 3.7_o let_v no_o man_n deceive_v you_o he_o that_o do_v righteousness_n be_v righteous_a even_o as_o he_o be_v righteous_a i_o may_v run_v over_o all_o the_o other_o particular_n there_o lay_v down_o but_o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o what_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o 17.18_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n have_v they_o not_o know_v and_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n of_o god_n before_o their_o eye_n be_v a_o regenerate_a man_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n and_o do_v not_o they_o fear_v god_n to_o who_o god_n have_v swear_v jer._n 32.40_o that_o he_o will_v put_v his_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o again_o second_o you_o will_v prove_v it_o by_o this_o argument_n because_o he_o speak_v of_o all_o those_o who_o be_v justify_v but_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o we_o must_v distinguish_v of_o a_o man_n before_o and_o after_o his_o justification_n every_o man_n be_v such_o a_o man_n before_o justification_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n he_o speak_v of_o all_o man_n but_o after_o justification_n there_o be_v a_o charge_n wrought_v in_o a_o man_n as_o i_o have_v former_o prove_v at_o large_a unto_o which_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n but_o three_o you_o instance_n in_o david_n and_o abraham_n who_o be_v regenerate_v man_n answ_n we_o be_v not_o to_o forget_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_fw-mi acquaint_v we_o that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a righteousness_n of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n the_o righteousness_n of_o justification_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o sanctification_n of_o the_o first_o of_o these_o the_o prophet_n speak_v say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v bless_v to_o who_o sin_n be_v not_o impute_v of_o the_o latter_a where_o he_o say_v of_o the_o same_o verse_n and_o in_o who_o spirit_n there_o be_v no_o guile_n which_o the_o learned_a zanchius_n do_v apprehend_v to_o be_v speak_v in_o reference_n to_o that_o sanctification_n which_o be_v in_o the_o unregenerate_v part_n understand_v the_o distinction_n right_o and_o you_o can_v want_v a_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n arg._n 3._o we_o believe_v not_o so_o steadfast_o nor_o love_n so_o perfect_o as_o we_o ought_v therefore_o be_v our_o faith_n &_o love_n imperfect_a and_o sinful_a ans_fw-fr 1._o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v the_o antecedent_n we_o may_v deny_v the_o consequence_n it_o be_v true_a that_o if_o a_o man_n do_v not_o believe_v so_o steadfast_o and_o love_v so_o perfect_o as_o he_o ought_v that_o then_o the_o man_n do_v sin_n consider_v he_o physical_o and_o this_o we_o have_v always_o grant_v but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o his_o faith_n and_o love_n be_v sin_n but_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v sin_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v so_o steadfast_o and_o love_v so_o perfect_o as_o he_o ought_v amesius_n do_v give_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o this_o in_o answer_v a_o argument_n which_o bellarmine_n do_v bring_v against_o the_o protestant_n to_o wit_n that_o sin_n do_v not_o please_v god_n in_o christ_n it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o sin_n do_v not_o please_v god_n but_o the_o stain_n of_o sin_n be_v do_v away_o the_o good_a which_o remain_v be_v please_v unto_o god_n sane_n quidem_fw-la certe_fw-la sedpeccati_fw-la maculâ_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la deletâ_fw-la bonum_fw-la substratum_fw-la placet_fw-la tom._n 4._o l._n 6._o c._n 8._o 2_o we_o say_v that_o a_o regenerate_a man_n look_v upon_o in_o the_o new_a covenant_n do_v believe_v steadfast_o and_o love_v perfect_o his_o unbelief_n and_o hatred_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v cover_v with_o the_o rich_a mantle_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o mercy_n as_o far_o as_o he_o do_v believe_v true_o he_o do_v believe_v steadfast_o and_o as_o far_o as_o he_o do_v love_n he_o do_v love_n perfect_o let_v not_o this_o offend_v any_o man_n that_o i_o say_v he_o do_v love_n perfect_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o most_o protestant_a writer_n that_o a_o regenerate_a man_n have_v a_o perfection_n of_o part_n though_o not_o of_o degree_n a_o child_n may_v have_v a_o humane_a nature_n and_o the_o part_n of_o a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o a_o man_n of_o forty_o year_n old_a a_o spark_n of_o fire_n have_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o fire_n a_o drop_n of_o water_n have_v the_o nature_n of_o water_n in_o it_o as_o well_o as_o all_o the_o water_n in_o the_o sea_n so_o a_o spark_n or_o drop_n of_o love_n have_v the_o divine_a nature_n of_o love_n in_o it_o as_o well_o as_o that_o which_o burn_v in_o the_o breast_n of_o a_o seraphim_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a and_o for_o this_o reason_n it_o be_v say_v that_o abraham_n be_v not_o weak_a in_o faith_n though_o it_o be_v unquestionable_a that_o he_o have_v his_o weakness_n in_o the_o flesh_n as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n and_o that_o he_o stagger_v not_o at_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n through_o unbelief_n but_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n give_v glory_n to_o god_n rom._n 4._o and_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n likewise_o of_o amesius_n in_o the_o place_n former_o cite_v where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o only_o good_a by_o the_o object_n of_o they_o but_o in_o reference_n to_o all_o the_o cause_n of_o they_o the_o efficient_a material_a formal_a and_o final_a cause_n opera_fw-la fidelium_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la sunt_fw-la bona_fw-la ex_fw-la objecto_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la quoad_fw-la omnes_fw-la causas_fw-la efficientem_fw-la materiam_fw-la
man_n shall_v live_v that_o be_v all_o those_o saint_n that_o shall_v die_v shall_v live_v again_o by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n who_o shall_v be_v their_o life_n three_o thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v the_o prophet_n do_v not_o speak_v here_o of_o a_o resurrection_n of_o soul_n but_o when_o he_o say_v thy_o dead_a man_n he_o mean_v only_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n as_o our_o age_n have_v be_v fertile_a to_o bring_v forth_o all_o monstrous_a tenant_n and_o opinion_n that_o other_o age_n have_v explode_v so_o it_o have_v bring_v forth_o this_o abominable_a error_n which_o many_o heathen_n by_o the_o dim_a light_n of_o nature_n have_v oppose_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v mortal_a they_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o people_n here_o in_o this_o city_n will_v meet_v with_o some_o that_o will_v affirm_v that_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n be_v mortal_a and_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o place_n that_o they_o make_v use_v of_o thy_o dead_a man_n now_o they_o say_v man_n be_v a_o compositum_fw-la of_o soul_n and_o body_n therefore_o see_v dead_a man_n must_v live_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o soul_n or_o humane_a spirit_n as_o well_o as_o the_o body_n must_v die_v but_o consider_v this_o be_v against_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n do_v not_o the_o wise_a man_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o body_n return_v to_o the_o dust_n and_o the_o spirit_n return_v to_o god_n that_o give_v it_o eccles_n 12.7_o do_v not_o paul_n desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n phil._n 1_o 23._o it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o he_o have_v a_o persuasion_n that_o as_o soon_o as_o his_o spirit_n do_v take_v leave_n of_o his_o body_n his_o spirit_n shall_v be_v happy_a in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v not_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o lazarus_n die_v the_o angel_n carry_v he_o into_o abraham_n bosom_n he_o come_v present_o to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o some_o happiness_n in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o god_n therefore_o we_o be_v to_o know_v here_o in_o this_o place_n that_o god_n speak_v unto_o we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n god_n speak_v to_o man_n speak_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o language_n of_o man_n and_o as_o we_o ordinary_o call_v the_o carcase_n of_o the_o dead_a a_o dead_a man_n so_o god_n when_o he_o say_v thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o spirit_n as_o though_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v mortal_a like_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o beast_n and_o do_v die_v with_o the_o body_n but_o the_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v arise_v thy_o dead_a man_n shall_v live_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o i_o will_v present_v you_o with_o place_n take_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n hosea_n 13.14_o there_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o prophet_n speak_v most_o plain_o of_o the_o resurrection_n i_o will_v ransom_n they_o from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o grave_n i_o will_v redeem_v they_o from_o death_n o_o death_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o plague_n o_o grave_n i_o will_v be_v thy_o destruction_n etc._n etc._n which_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 15._o cite_v and_o prove_v that_o this_o promise_n shall_v be_v full_o accomplish_v to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n at_o the_o general_a resurrrection_n so_o likewise_o god_n teach_v his_o holy_a servant_n ezekiel_n this_o lesson_n in_o a_o holy_a vision_n ezek._n 37._o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o i_o and_o carry_v i_o out_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o set_v i_o down_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o valley_n which_o be_v full_a of_o bone_n and_o cause_v i_o to_o pass_v by_o they_o round_o about_o and_o behold_v there_o be_v very_o many_o in_o the_o open_a valley_n and_o lo_o they_o be_v very_o dry_a and_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o son_n of_o man_n can_v these_o bone_n live_v and_o i_o answer_v o_o lord_n god_n thou_o know_v again_o he_o say_v unto_o i_o prophecy_n upon_o these_o bone_n and_o say_v unto_o they_o o_o you_o dry_a bone_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n god_n unto_o these_o bone_n behold_v i_o will_v cause_v breath_n to_o enter_v into_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v and_o i_o will_v lay_v sinew_n upon_o you_o and_o bring_v up_o flesh_n upon_o you_o and_o cover_v you_o with_o skin_n and_o put_v breath_n in_o you_o and_o you_o shall_v live_v and_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n ezek._n 37.1_o here_o the_o prophet_n do_v speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o show_v that_o a_o spirit_n of_o life_n and_o power_n shall_v come_v upon_o the_o dry_a bone_n and_o dust_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v live_v again_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n what_o be_v job_n faith_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o suffering_n but_o in_o the_o resurrection_n job_n 19.25_o 26._o i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o that_o he_o shall_v stand_v at_o the_o latter_a day_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o though_o after_o my_o skin_n worm_n shall_v destroy_v this_o body_n yet_o in_o my_o flesh_n i_o shall_v see_v god_n here_o be_v a_o plain_a place_n in_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v hold_v forth_o to_o we_o he_o profess_v that_o he_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v eternal_a life_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o father_n make_v flesh_n he_o say_v i_o shall_v see_v he_o with_o what_o eye_n with_o these_o eye_n and_o no_o other_o with_o these_o very_a eye_n i_o urge_v this_o place_n to_o two_o man_n and_o i_o have_v two_o several_a answer_n from_o they_o one_o that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n give_v this_o answer_n i_o may_v tremble_v to_o speak_v it_o job_n speak_v as_o a_o crazy_a old_a man_n he_o know_v not_o what_o and_o therefore_o this_o be_v no_o solid_a place_n to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n the_o second_o say_v he_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n because_o he_o say_v in_o my_o flesh_n i_o shall_v see_v god_n now_o god_n be_v not_o see_v with_o fleshly_a eye_n but_o the_o answer_n to_o this_o be_v easy_a he_o speak_v of_o christ_n as_o god-man_n so_o we_o be_v say_v to_o see_v god_n when_o we_o see_v god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v rev._n 1.7_o behold_v he_o come_v with_o cloud_n and_o every_o eye_n shall_v see_v he_o and_o they_o also_o which_o pierce_v he_o and_o all_o kindred_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v wail_v because_o of_o he_o with_o bodily_a eye_n we_o may_v see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o his_o body_n and_o with_o that_o spiritual_a eye_n and_o in_o that_o spiritual_a body_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v give_v unto_o we_o at_o the_o resurrection_n with_o that_o spiritual_a eye_n and_o in_o that_o spiritual_a body_n we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o see_v that_o spiritual_a body_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v so_o see_v christ_n we_o see_v god_n because_o christ_n be_v god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v he_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o the_o place_n be_v infinite_a almost_o in_o the_o new-testament_n nothing_o be_v so_o much_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n paul_n come_v to_o athens_n among_o the_o epicure_n and_o stoic_n great_a scholar_n that_o be_v fool_n and_o ignorant_a in_o religion_n he_o preach_v the_o resurrection_n that_o god_n will_v judge_v the_o world_n by_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n so_o they_o be_v to_o be_v witness_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o to_o preach_v christ_n rise_v from_o the_o dead_a to_o give_v evidence_n and_o assurance_n to_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v rise_v likewise_o as_o well_o as_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 15._o there_o be_v man_n creep_v into_o that_o congregation_n that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n therefore_o what_o strong_a argument_n do_v paul_n lay_v down_o to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n he_o show_v that_o christ_n die_v in_o vain_a and_o that_o all_o religion_n be_v in_o vain_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v impostor_n and_o liar_n who_o preach_v that_o christ_n be_v rise_v and_o that_o the_o saint_n by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n shall_v rise_v if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n so_o in_o 1_o thess_n 4.17_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o subject_n and_o show_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o how_o christ_n shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o the_o trump_n of_o god_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v
rise_v first_o verse_n 16._o here_o you_o see_v he_o hold_v forth_o this_o that_o christ_n who_o be_v that_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n and_o true_a man_n now_o in_o heaven_n this_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o that_o the_o saint_n shall_v rise_v from_o the_o earth_n to_o meet_v he_o in_o the_o air_n so_o the_o angel_n tell_v the_o apostle_n act._n 1.11_o when_o they_o look_v up_o to_o christ_n when_o he_o ascend_v this_o same_o jesus_n shall_v so_o come_v from_o heaven_n as_o you_o now_o see_v he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n the_o same_o christ_n shall_v descend_v from_o heaven_n and_o the_o apostle_n shall_v see_v he_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n with_o the_o very_a same_o eve_n with_o which_o they_o see_v he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n with_o the_o same_o eye_n they_o shall_v see_v he_o descend_v from_o heaven_n the_o scripture_n be_v so_o full_a that_o i_o need_v not_o take_v more_o pain_n to_o give_v you_o more_o place_n for_o the_o open_n of_o it_o unless_o you_o will_v please_v to_o take_v one_o place_n more_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o they_o have_v a_o clear_a knowledge_n of_o this_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o law_n as_o well_o as_o we_o have_v now_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o gospel_n dan._n 12.12_o and_o at_o that_o time_n shall_v michael_n stand_v up_o the_o great_a prince_n which_o stand_v for_o the_o child_n of_o thy_o people_n that_o be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o always_o stand_v for_o his_o people_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o time_n of_o trouble_n such_o as_o never_o be_v since_o there_o be_v a_o nation_n even_o to_o the_o same_o time_n and_o at_o that_o time_n thy_o people_n shall_v be_v deliver_v every_o one_o that_o shall_v be_v find_v write_v in_o the_o book_n and_o many_o of_o they_o that_o sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v awake_v some_o to_o everlasting_a life_n and_o some_o to_o shame_n and_o everlasting_a contempt_n and_o they_o that_o be_v wise_a shall_v shine_v as_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o firmament_n and_o they_o that_o turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n as_o the_o star_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o here_o you_o see_v the_o same_o thing_n hold_v forth_o though_o i_o will_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o many_o reason_n to_o confirm_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n above_o reason_n i_o call_v here_o not_o so_o much_o for_o reason_n as_o for_o faith_n to_o believe_v what_o be_v above_o reason_n and_o what_o seem_v contrary_a to_o carnal_a reason_n yet_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o give_v you_o a_o reason_n or_o two_o draw_v from_o the_o sacred_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n the_o first_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n god_n be_v true_a therefore_o there_o will_v be_v a_o resurrection_n he_o shall_v deceive_v and_o delude_v his_o people_n be_v there_o not_o a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n do_v he_o not_o often_o tell_v we_o of_o a_o resurrection_n and_o do_v not_o our_o saviour_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o will_v raise_v those_o at_o the_o last_o day_n who_o be_v draw_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o father_n joh._n 6.44_o and_o therefore_o unless_o we_o will_v make_v the_o great_a god_n which_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o think_v a_o liar_n and_o christ_n his_o son_n a_o preacher_n of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o great_a impostor_n in_o the_o world_n and_o all_o his_o minister_n servant_n and_o messenger_n cheater_n juggler_n and_o deceiver_n of_o the_o people_n we_o can_v but_o acknowledge_v a_o resurrection_n for_o god_n have_v speak_v of_o it_o and_o have_v reveal_v this_o to_o they_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o resurrection_n and_o they_o preach_v it_o in_o his_o name_n therefore_o the_o god_n of_o truth_n shall_v be_v find_v a_o liar_n if_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n according_a to_o his_o word_n second_o the_o justice_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n seem_v to_o call_v for_o a_o resurrection_n if_o we_o look_v upon_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n so_o god_n in_o justice_n must_v send_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n to_o raise_v the_o dead_a and_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n or_o else_o how_o shall_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n shine_v clear_a and_o bright_a before_o the_o eye_n and_o sace_n of_o man_n this_o be_v the_o argument_n that_o the_o apostle_n lay_v down_o 2_o thess_n 1.5_o 6._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o persecutor_n who_o wrong_v they_o for_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n which_o be_v say_v he_o a_o manifest_a token_n of_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o god_n it_o be_v a_o demonstration_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o evident_a infallible_a sign_n that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o judgement_n day_n and_o a_o resurrection_n because_o else_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v just_a it_o be_v a_o righteous_a thing_n with_o god_n to_o recompense_v tribulation_n to_o they_o that_o trouble_v you_o it_o be_v just_a with_o the_o god_n of_o justice_n to_o punish_v the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n disobedient_a and_o wicked_a man_n who_o never_o do_v flee_v to_o his_o grace_n for_o life_n and_o salvation_n it_o be_v just_a with_o he_o to_o pay_v the_o persecutor_n of_o his_o people_n their_o wage_n after_o they_o have_v do_v their_o work_n now_o if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o judgement_n day_n if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o resurrection_n where_o shall_v god_n give_v they_o their_o wage_n for_o persecute_v and_o trouble_v they_o that_o make_v profession_n of_o his_o name_n how_o shall_v god_n that_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n appear_v to_o be_v just_a here_o be_v the_o first_o argument_n that_o god_n be_v just_a to_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n and_o god_n can_v not_o appear_v to_o be_v just_a if_o there_o be_v no_o judgement_n day_n no_o resnrrection_n therefore_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n now_o the_o same_o thing_n fall_v alike_o to_o the_o just_a and_o unjust_a we_o see_v wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n thrive_v and_o prosper_v in_o the_o world_n they_o live_v in_o pleasure_n there_o be_v no_o band_n in_o their_o death_n as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v they_o spend_v their_o day_n in_o mirth_n and_o die_v upon_o their_o bed_n without_o sorrow_n how_o shall_v god_n appear_v to_o be_v just_a unless_o there_o be_v another_o day_n when_o god_n will_v call_v these_o man_n to_o a_o reckon_n for_o all_o the_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n which_o they_o do_v commit_v against_o he_o when_o they_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n second_o if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o argument_n that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n make_v use_v of_o matth._n 22.31_o when_o the_o sadducee_n come_v to_o he_o who_o say_v there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n nor_o spirit_n nor_o devil_n as_o our_o sadducee_n do_v who_o say_v there_o be_v no_o devil_n but_o our_o own_o evil_a thought_n nor_o good_a angel_n but_o the_o good_a motion_n of_o our_o own_o spirit_n nor_o any_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n see_v what_o argument_n he_o use_v to_o prove_v the_o resurrection_n as_o touch_v the_o resurrection_n have_v you_o not_o read_v that_o which_o be_v speak_v to_o you_o by_o god_n say_v i_o be_o the_o god_n of_o abraham_n the_o god_n of_o isaac_n and_o the_o god_n of_o jacob_n god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o dead_a but_o of_o the_o live_n god_n profess_v himself_o the_o god_n of_o dead_a saint_n in_o a_o special_a manner_n therefore_o these_o must_v live_v again_o and_o be_v make_v happy_a by_o this_o god_n that_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v their_o god_n while_o their_o body_n lie_v rot_v and_o putrify_v in_o the_o earth_n god_n in_o his_o never_o fail_a faithfulness_n own_v they_o in_o the_o dust_n keep_v their_o ash_n in_o safety_n by_o which_o christ_n do_v ascertain_v we_o that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n so_o that_o you_o see_v if_o this_o truth_n be_v deny_v it_o will_v overthrow_v the_o scripture_n which_o acquaint_v we_o that_o some_o be_v vessel_n of_o honour_n some_o of_o dishonour_n that_o some_o be_v vessel_n of_o grace_n and_o some_o be_v vessel_n of_o god_n fury_n and_o indignation_n if_o there_o be_v no_o judgement_n day_n no_o resurrection_n there_o can_v be_v vessel_n of_o wrath_n and_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n we_o be_v of_o all_o man_n most_o miserable_a etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 15._o therefore_o a_o resurrection_n must_v be_v grant_v that_o saint_n may_v appear_v the_o vessel_n of_o god_n mercy_n 1._o use_v confut._n that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v consute_v the_o blasphemous_a and_o diabolical_a
that_o they_o be_v as_o willing_a to_o be_v devour_v by_o the_o lion_n as_o the_o people_n be_v desirous_a of_o their_o destruction_n by_o the_o lion_n eusebius_n tell_v we_o that_o when_o as_o the_o proconsul_n exhort_v germanicus_n to_o relent_v admonish_v he_o of_o his_o tender_a year_n pray_v he_o to_o pity_v his_o own_o case_n be_v now_o in_o the_o flower_n of_o his_o youth_n he_o without_o intermission_n entice_v the_o beast_n to_o devour_v he_o eusebius_n four_o book_n of_o the_o eccl._n hist_n what_o steel_v the_o spirit_n of_o these_o man_n and_o carry_v they_o above_o carnal_a reason_n and_o the_o weak_a principle_n of_o nature_n but_o a_o strong_a and_o powerful_a persuasion_n in_o their_o spirit_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o glorious_a and_o joyful_a resurrection_n at_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v that_o that_o the_o apostle_n prove_v to_o we_o heb._n 11.35_o some_o be_v torture_v not_o accept_v deliverance_n that_o they_o may_v obtain_v a_o better_a resurrection_n he_o inform_v we_o that_o when_o deliverance_n be_v offer_v they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o it_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n they_o expect_v a_o resurrection_n threaten_n can_v not_o terrify_v they_o from_o the_o truth_n nor_o promise_n draw_v they_o to_o error_n because_o they_o be_v without_o waver_v persuade_v of_o a_o resurrection_n this_o be_v that_o that_o make_v polycarpus_n the_o martyr_n so_o willing_a todie_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o appear_v by_o his_o speech_n when_o he_o be_v tie_v at_o the_o stake_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v gracious_o vouchsafe_v this_o day_n to_o allot_v i_o a_o portion_n among_o the_o number_n of_o martyr_n among_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o everlasting_a life_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n etc._n etc._n euseb_n this_o be_v that_o likewise_o that_o make_v the_o saint_n to_o be_v so_o merry_a and_o cheerful_a upon_o their_o deathbed_n when_o hilarion_n lie_v sick_a and_o in_o his_o flesh_n do_v feel_v a_o little_a fear_n of_o death_n he_o present_o reprove_v himself_o and_o break_v forth_o into_o these_o word_n egredere_fw-la egredere_fw-la anima_fw-la go_v forth_o go_v forth_o my_o soul_n have_v thou_o serve_v christ_n so_o many_o year_n and_o now_o be_v thou_o afraid_a to_o die_v what_o difference_n can_v there_o be_v between_o the_o death_n of_o saint_n and_o of_o wicked_a profane_a unbelieving_a man_n if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a at_o all_o and_o therefore_o as_o you_o desire_v to_o live_v comfortable_o and_o to_o die_v happy_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o christ_n rejoice_v upon_o your_o deathbed_n live_v constant_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o while_o other_o that_o have_v seduce_v ignorant_a and_o poor_a people_n into_o familisme_n with_o a_o brazen_a face_n all_o their_o day_n shall_v tremble_v upon_o their_o deathbed_n be_v afraid_a of_o death_n and_o dread_v a_o judgement_n day_n which_o they_o have_v deny_v like_o the_o emperor_n hadrian_n animula_fw-la vagula_fw-la blandula_fw-la quae_fw-la nunc_fw-la abibis_fw-la in_o loca_fw-la pallidula_fw-la rigida_fw-la nudula_fw-la poor_a wander_a pale_a quiver_a soul_n whither_o shall_v thou_o go_v platina_n in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o shall_v call_v for_o death_n and_o not_o look_v on_o death_n as_o a_o way_n to_o the_o infernal_a prison_n but_o as_o a_o passage_n to_o immortality_n in_o heaven_n you_o shall_v see_v the_o lion_n death_n slay_v and_o find_v nothing_o but_o honey_n in_o the_o carcase_n you_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o confidence_n that_o your_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v while_o they_o shall_v tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o a_o resurrection_n for_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o take_v notice_n that_o god_n seldom_o suffer_v man_n that_o be_v grow_v to_o this_o height_n of_o unbelief_n and_o ungodliness_n to_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o die_v without_o gall_a and_o trouble_a conscience_n as_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o some_o of_o many_o that_o be_v profess_a atheist_n who_o when_o they_o come_v to_o their_o death_n bed_n though_o they_o in_o their_o health_n and_o strength_n swim_v in_o a_o world_n of_o pleasure_n and_o contentment_n assert_v that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n yet_o when_o they_o come_v to_o lie_v on_o their_o deathbed_n none_o seem_v to_o be_v more_o afraid_a of_o a_o god_n and_o to_o tremble_v so_o much_o at_o his_o power_n as_o these_o man_n so_o none_o be_v more_o afraid_a of_o death_n hell_n and_o a_o resurrection_n than_o some_o of_o these_o that_o have_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o hell_n or_o a_o resurrection_n i_o remember_v the_o speech_n of_o zeno_n the_o philosopher_n if_o i_o will_v persuade_v any_o man_n from_o atheism_n say_v he_o i_o will_v lead_v he_o to_o the_o deathbed_n of_o a_o atheist_n when_o he_o be_v gasp_v out_o his_o last_o breath_n so_o if_o i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o persuade_v you_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n by_o what_o i_o have_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n if_o i_o know_v where_o any_o of_o these_o do_v lie_v sick_a i_o will_v carry_v you_o to_o their_o deathbed_n and_o you_o may_v see_v some_o of_o they_o trouble_v and_o gall_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o have_v blasphemous_o profess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n hereafter_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v at_o the_o present_a to_o add_v many_o more_o word_n for_o i_o hope_v better_a thing_n of_o you_o and_o such_o thing_n which_o accompany_v salvation_n i_o hope_v there_o be_v few_o such_o spirit_n as_o these_o in_o this_o congregation_n yet_o i_o know_v the_o devil_n be_v so_o subtle_a that_o where_o he_o think_v people_n be_v most_o spiritual_a and_o know_v god_n most_o and_o be_v acquaint_v with_o christ_n he_o send_v his_o imp_n his_o sadducee_n to_o trouble_n and_o assault_v they_o he_o do_v not_o set_v so_o much_o upon_o any_o people_n to_o draw_v they_o away_o as_o upon_o those_o that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o devil_n know_v such_o who_o he_o have_v safe_a within_o his_o own_o command_n and_o many_o of_o these_o be_v not_o assault_v by_o these_o imp_n but_o when_o man_n seem_v to_o be_v heir_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o adoption_n and_o to_o have_v their_o name_n write_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o none_o be_v able_a to_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o devil_n send_v his_o evil_a angel_n to_o such_o man_n as_o these_o therefore_o know_v that_o you_o shall_v meet_v with_o such_o spirit_n i_o think_v good_a to_o speak_v somewhat_o before_o that_o be_v forewarn_v you_o may_v be_v fore-armed_n praemoniti_fw-la praemuniti_fw-la that_o you_o may_v go_v on_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o might_n though_o the_o devil_n may_v buffet_v you_o for_o a_o time_n by_o these_o wicked_a instrument_n and_o cast_v his_o fiery_a dart_n into_o your_o heart_n and_o spirit_n to_o persuade_v you_o that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n and_o may_v certain_o know_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v a_o truth_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n and_o it_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o my_o soul_n that_o you_o may_v live_v continual_o and_o constant_o in_o the_o confidence_n and_o assurance_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o your_o body_n which_o be_v join_v with_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n will_v sweeten_v your_o life_n and_o crown_v your_o death_n with_o happiness_n death_n which_o come_v in_o upon_o man_n as_o a_o legal_a curse_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o blessing_n unto_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v your_o fear_n but_o desire_v with_o paul_n you_o shall_v desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v lay_v aside_o as_o of_o no_o worth_n or_o value_n christ_n will_v appear_v unto_o you_o but_o a_o shadow_n fancy_n and_o forge_a chimaera_n of_o man_n brain_n as_o the_o wicked_a pope_n be_v persuade_v who_o do_v thus_o glory_n in_o his_o riches_n what_o great_a riches_n have_v we_o get_v by_o this_o fable_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o as_o you_o desire_v to_o breath_n forth_o your_o soul_n with_o joy_n into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n live_v in_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o resurrection_n through_o christ_n that_o will_v make_v you_o say_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o pang_n of_o death_n with_o simeon_n lord_n let_v thy_o servant_n now_o depart_v for_o my_o eye_n
the_o three_o of_o the_o eph._n 6._o do_v teach_v we_o that_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d part_n of_o the_o same_o body_n one_o that_o desire_v to_o moderate_v between_o the_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n wish_v they_o not_o to_o be_v so_o bitter_a the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o make_v use_v of_o this_o argument_n tell_v they_o that_o luther_n and_o calvin_n be_v reconcile_v in_o love_n together_o in_o heaven_n let_v not_o strife_n hatred_n malice_n and_o bitterness_n prevail_v among_o you_o christian_n for_o you_o shall_v sweet_o agree_v together_o as_o one_o body_n in_o one_o spirit_n at_o the_o resurrection_n use_v 2._o there_o be_v such_o a_o glorious_a union_n between_o we_o and_o christ_n it_o shall_v engage_v the_o spirit_n of_o saint_n to_o be_v much_o in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o it_o as_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n do_v run_v through_o the_o body_n so_o this_o doctrine_n of_o union_n do_v run_v through_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christian_a religion_n our_o justification_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n &_o our_o own_o justification_n in_o our_o own_o person_n by_o christ_n can_v be_v clear_o understand_v if_o we_o be_v total_o ignorant_a of_o union_n with_o christ_n as_o the_o philosopher_n say_v that_o all_o moral_a virtue_n be_v link_v together_o in_o justice_n so_o all_o the_o point_n of_o christianity_n be_v concatenate_v and_o join_v together_o in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o union_n as_o the_o star_n do_v lead_v the_o wise_a man_n to_o christ_n shine_v over_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v so_o this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n shine_v among_o other_o truth_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n do_v hold_v forth_o unto_o we_o a_o light_n to_o direct_v we_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o a_o perfect_a and_o comfortable_a knowledge_n of_o all_o other_o truth_n as_o it_o do_v in_o a_o especial_a manner_n beam_n forth_o light_a unto_o we_o to_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o you_o see_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v raise_v because_o they_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n and_o one_o with_o he_o therefore_o this_o may_v strengthen_v the_o faith_n of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o concern_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o resurrection●_n what_o say_v the_o apostle_n no_o man_n yet_o ever_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n but_o nourish_v it_o and_o cherish_v it_o eph._n 5.29_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n can_v hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n nor_o forget_v his_o own_o body_n the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o in_o love_n will_v raise_v they_o even_o while_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o dust_n they_o be_v his_o body_n our_o propriety_n in_o a_o thing_n do_v draw_v out_o our_o affection_n to_o the_o thing_n our_o body_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o affection_n even_o while_o they_o moulder_v in_o the_o dust_n therefore_o let_v this_o truth_n pierce_v your_o understanding_n and_o sink_v deep_a into_o your_o memory_n and_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o your_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o your_o body_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o scripture_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v speak_v so_o glorious_o of_o that_o union_n which_o all_o the_o saint_n have_v with_o jesus_n christ_n in_o that_o one_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o in_o every_o saint_n that_o it_o seem_v to_o hold_v forth_o christ_n as_o incomplete_a till_o he_o have_v gather_v all_o his_o member_n into_o one_o body_n and_o certain_o christ_n will_v not_o appear_v incomplete_a in_o his_o body_n at_o the_o resurrection_n which_o he_o shall_v do_v shall_v he_o not_o by_o his_o power_n command_v the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n therefore_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o part_n of_o himself_o to_o lie_v in_o the_o dust_n he_o will_v not_o appear_v at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n without_o a_o limb_n not_o without_o a_o hand_n not_o without_o a_o finger_n not_o without_o the_o least_o member_n thou_o that_o be_v the_o mean_a christian_n that_o apprehend_v thyself_o to_o be_v but_o as_o the_o toe_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v strong_o persuade_v of_o thy_o resurrection_n for_o i_o tell_v thou_o when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v at_o the_o great_a resurrection_n he_o will_v not_o be_v without_o a_o toe_n not_o without_o the_o low_a and_o most_o inferior_a member_n of_o his_o body_n he_o will_v appear_v in_o his_o fullness_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n gather_v together_o and_o make_v one_o with_o he_o in_o body_n and_o spirit_n be_v his_o fullness_n and_o completeness_n the_o king_n when_o he_o ride_v in_o triumph_n or_o to_o his_o great_a counsel_n he_o ride_v in_o his_o royal_a robe_n and_o in_o all_o his_o glory_n when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v the_o second_o time_n he_o will_v ride_v in_o triumph_n as_o a_o conqueror_n of_o all_o enemy_n and_o will_v ride_v to_o his_o great_a counsel_n or_o parliament_n of_o saint_n who_o be_v to_o judge_v the_o delinquent_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o saint_n be_v his_o glory_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o and_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v raise_v that_o he_o may_v be_v in_o his_o full_a glory_n if_o thou_o look_v upon_o thyself_o and_o thy_o body_n and_o consider_v how_o thou_o have_v dishonour_v god_n in_o thy_o body_n it_o may_v be_v thou_o may_v be_v startle_v in_o thy_o spirit_n and_o have_v such_o sad_a thought_n as_o these_o will_v christ_n ever_o raise_v this_o body_n as_o he_o that_o i_o have_v abuse_v to_o sin_n ●_o shall_v this_o body_n be_v glorify_v which_o i_o have_v dishonour_v by_o base_a and_o filthy_a lust_n but_o when_o thou_o have_v any_o such_o thought_n as_o these_o in_o which_o the_o devil_n appear_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n to_o make_v thou_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o glorious_a resurrection_n of_o thy_o body_n then_o look_v beyond_o thyself_o beyond_o the_o sin_n that_o thou_o have_v commit_v against_o god_n in_o thy_o body_n and_o spirit_n and_o think_v thus_o with_o thyself_o this_o body_n though_o i_o have_v abuse_v it_o by_o lust_n and_o intemperance_n though_o i_o have_v dishonour_v god_n by_o the_o sin_n which_o i_o have_v commit_v and_o act_v as_o it_o be_v upon_o a_o stage_n in_o this_o body_n and_o flesh_n of_o i_o yet_o now_o the_o property_n be_v alter_v i_o be_o not_o now_o to_o look_v on_o it_o as_o my_o body_n i_o be_o to_o look_v on_o it_o as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n it_o be_v that_o body_n that_o he_o have_v wash_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n it_o be_v that_o body_n that_o he_o die_v for_o that_o he_o may_v cleanse_v it_o from_o filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n it_o be_v his_o body_n he_o have_v right_a to_o it_o and_o a_o propriety_n in_o it_o it_o be_v he_o and_o none_o of_o i_o christ_n will_v not_o lose_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v be_v raise_v in_o glory_n we_o see_v how_o unwilling_a man_n be_v to_o part_v with_o that_o which_o be_v their_o possession_n and_o inheritance_n we_o know_v how_o naboth_n answer_v ahab_n who_o will_v have_v have_v his_o vineyard_n 1_o king_n 21.3_o shall_v i_o give_v the_o inheritance_n of_o my_o father_n unto_o thou_o we_o be_v the_o inheritance_n the_o possession_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o he_o will_v not_o lose_v any_o part_n of_o his_o inheritance_n this_o argument_n be_v of_o sufficient_a strength_n to_o silence_v carnal_a reason_n if_o it_o be_v thorough_o weigh_v by_o we_o in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n for_o if_o a_o man_n look_v on_o himself_o as_o out_o of_o himself_o and_o the_o be_v which_o he_o have_v in_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o behold_v himself_o as_o one_o with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o a_o spiritual_a oneness_n see_v himself_o as_o such_o a_o part_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o hand_n or_o a_o foot_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o know_v christ_n have_v undertake_v to_o provide_v for_o his_o body_n and_o to_o own_o it_o for_o his_o own_o this_o will_v establish_v he_o in_o a_o unshaken_a confidence_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n intend_v to_o raise_v his_o body_n and_o to_o assure_v and_o ascertain_v we_o that_o he_o will_v raise_v we_o he_o himself_o be_v rise_v in_o his_o own_o person_n if_o the_o head_n be_v above_o the_o water_n the_o whole_a body_n may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o water_n without_o drown_v christ_n our_o head_n be_v above_o water_n above_o the_o billow_n that_o overwhelm_v he_o be_v above_o sin_n that_o be_v charge_v on_o he_o be_v above_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n that_o come_v upon_o he_o when_o he_o be_v make_v
scripture_n though_o it_o be_v write_v in_o a_o plain_a style_n and_o though_o there_o be_v not_o that_o humane_a eloquence_n and_o rhetoric_n in_o it_o which_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o some_o man_n who_o preach_v themselves_o rather_o then_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o man_n be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o day_n grow_v more_o and_o more_o in_o love_n with_o the_o bless_a and_o holy_a scripture_n i_o remember_v what_o a_o orator_n speak_v in_o the_o commendation_n of_o cicero_n faith_n he_o be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o oratory_n that_o delight_v to_o read_v the_o oration_n of_o cicero_n so_o he_o be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o christianity_n that_o in_o believe_v delight_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o man_n that_o fall_v off_o to_o these_o opinion_n present_o they_o slight_v the_o scripture_n and_o either_o whole_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o they_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o by_o allegorise_v those_o thing_n that_o have_v a_o plain_a simple_a historical_a meaning_n in_o they_o that_o be_v the_o first_o rule_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o there_o you_o shall_v see_v no_o such_o fancy_n and_o fond_a notion_n as_o these_o man_n have_v the_o second_o direction_n be_v this_o take_v heed_n of_o those_o that_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o plain_a familiar_a way_n you_o may_v know_v some_o familist_n by_o their_o bombastick_a language_n they_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o language_n of_o canaan_n in_o their_o sermon_n but_o they_o have_v a_o affect_a language_n of_o their_o own_o that_o few_o understand_v but_o those_o that_o have_v apply_v themselves_o much_o to_o the_o study_n of_o their_o writing_n and_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o their_o opinion_n and_o by_o their_o chemical_a dark_a expression_n and_o fond_a notion_n they_o delude_v poor_a soul_n that_o think_v they_o be_v spiritual_a man_n and_o that_o great_a thing_n be_v reveal_v to_o they_o which_o be_v not_o discover_v to_o other_o saint_n when_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o horrid_a antichristianisme_n or_o atheism_n lie_v at_o the_o bottom_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o shall_v be_v evident_a when_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n 2_o tim._n 3.9_o their_o folly_n shall_v be_v manifest_a unt_n all_o man_n paul_n say_v when_o he_o come_v to_o preach_v at_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 2.4_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o excellency_n of_o speech_n nor_o in_o the_o entice_a word_n of_o man_n wisdom_n but_o in_o plainness_n of_o speech_n in_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n and_o it_o be_v the_o command_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o man_n speak_v he_o shall_v speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 4.11_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o as_o do_v relate_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v to_o be_v deliver_v man_n be_v to_o speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n speak_v nothing_o but_o truth_n and_o as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n for_o plainness_n of_o speech_n st._n paul_n speak_v of_o true_a gospel-preacher_n say_v we_o use_v great_a plainness_n of_o speech_n the_o scripture_n be_v in_o a_o plain_a familiar_a style_n the_o sermon_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v plain_a familiar_a sermon_n adorn_v with_o plain_a simile_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o imitate_v their_o master_n so_o shall_v our_o discourse_n be_v with_o all_o plainness_n of_o speech_n &_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n &_o power_n that_o the_o glory_n may_v be_v give_v not_o to_o the_o eloquence_n of_o our_o tongue_n but_o to_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n in_o convert_v of_o soul_n therefore_o take_v heed_n of_o those_o that_o lead_v you_o from_o the_o plainness_n of_o preach_v hide_v their_o curse_a error_n in_o a_o thicket_n and_o cloud_n of_o dark_a work_n and_o unscripture-like_a expression_n not_o hold_v fast_o the_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n according_a to_o god_n precept_n 2_o tim._n 1.13_o 2_o cor._n 3.12_o look_v on_o the_o scripture_n and_o see_v how_o paul_n speak_v of_o justification_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o so_o let_v we_o preach_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n but_o those_o that_o have_v language_n not_o like_o the_o language_n of_o scripture_n suspect_v they_o they_o make_v a_o fair_a show_n there_o be_v great_a glory_n and_o outward_a pomp_n in_o their_o word_n but_o latet_fw-la anguis_fw-la there_o be_v a_o snake_n that_o lie_v under_o these_o fine_a green_a herb_n take_v heed_n of_o such_o man_n and_o look_v more_o for_o the_o inward_a power_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o speak_n of_o man_n then_o for_o fine_a word_n phrase_n notion_n and_o simile_n that_o man_n may_v make_v use_n of_o to_o win_v you_o to_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o error_n the_o three_o direction_n which_o i_o shall_v present_v unto_o you_o be_v this_o take_v heed_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n for_o one_o reason_n why_o so_o many_o fall_n off_o from_o the_o truth_n to_o these_o horrid_a opinion_n be_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n some_o of_o these_o thought_n that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o knowledge_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n and_o that_o they_o understand_v as_o much_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o have_v hear_v as_o much_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n as_o any_o can_v preach_v of_o it_o and_o of_o the_o resurrection_n as_o any_o can_v speak_v they_o know_v as_o they_o suppose_v what_o this_o man_n speak_v and_o what_o the_o other_o preach_v what_o this_o man_n judgement_n be_v what_o author_n do_v write_v and_o they_o know_v perfect_o as_o they_o imagine_v whatsoever_o lie_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v embrace_v for_o truth_n and_o by_o their_o pride_n do_v surfeit_v of_o their_o knowledge_n suppose_v that_o they_o know_v all_o point_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o in_o deed_n and_o in_o truth_n they_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o gospel_n save_o spiritual_o or_o practical_o so_o that_o as_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n come_v to_o loath_a manna_n and_o lust_v after_o other_o food_n so_o these_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o spiritual_a pride_n begin_v to_o loathe_v the_o heavenly_a manna_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o disesteem_v it_o for_o the_o plainness_n and_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o nothing_o now_o will_v please_v they_o but_o new_a fancy_n therefore_o they_o must_v have_v sermon_n dress_v in_o another_o fashion_n new_o cook_v new_a notion_n and_o new_a conceit_n and_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v new_a please_v they_o better_o than_o the_o old_a and_o ancient_a truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o when_o god_n teach_v a_o man_n to_o understand_v the_o gospel_n aright_o the_o more_o he_o know_v the_o gospel_n the_o more_o he_o see_v his_o ignorance_n of_o the_o gospel_n ●_o that_o man_n see_v he_o never_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n full_o that_o man_n see_v that_o h●●_n have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n o●_n sanctification_n this_o man_n look_v not_o on_o his_o knowledge_n mere_o as_o it_o be_v speculative_a but_o as_o it_o be_v practical_a when_o he_o see_v any_o unbelief_n in_o his_o heart_n he_o say_v within_o himself_o i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o see_v any_o hatred_n in_o his_o spirit_n to_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o any_o inclination_n to_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a he_o wise_o conclude_v i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o sanctification_n when_o he_o find_v sadness_n in_o his_o spirit_n o_o say_v he_o there_o be_v more_o in_o the_o gospel_n concern_v the_o spirit_n of_o joy_n and_o consolation_n than_o i_o have_v attain_v to_o when_o he_o read_v sundry_a enigmatical_a and_o difficult_a place_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n and_o have_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o spiritual_a meaning_n of_o they_o o_o say_v he_o i_o be_o not_o sufficient_o acquaint_v with_o the_o truth_n which_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o word_n though_o i_o may_v have_v knowledge_n enough_o to_o carry_v i_o to_o heaven_n yet_o i_o be_o very_o ignorant_a of_o many_o truth_n of_o christ_n thus_o a_o man_n that_o true_o live_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o as_o these_o be_v that_o fall_v to_o these_o hideous_a and_o blasphemous_a notion_n and_o opinion_n hab._n 2._o he_o that_o be_v lift_v up_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o upright_o but_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o his_o faith_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o
happiness_n by_o jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n thou_o shall_v be_v happy_a with_o god_n and_o with_o jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n in_o body_n and_o spirit_n which_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n grant_v unto_o we_o all_o amen_n a_o postscript_n to_o the_o reader_n when_o one_o make_v a_o motion_n that_o a_o law_n may_v be_v make_v and_o some_o great_a punishment_n inflict_v upon_o parricide_n another_o object_v against_o he_o and_o say_v that_o such_o a_o law_n will_v be_v useless_a because_o there_o be_v no_o parricide_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n neither_o will_v there_o be_v any_o here_o after_o to_o be_v punish_v by_o his_o law_n so_o some_o may_v suppose_v that_o some_o passage_n in_o these_o discourse_n be_v needless_a which_o have_v their_o point_n direct_v against_o the_o face_n of_o blaspheme_a familist_n and_o licentious_a libertine_n apprehend_v that_o there_o be_v none_o such_o among_o we_o for_o the_o present_a and_o that_o there_o will_v not_o be_v any_o such_o who_o may_v come_v up_o as_o from_o hell_n among_o we_o hereafter_o and_o none_o will_v be_v so_o ready_a to_o lay_v this_o charge_n upon_o i_o as_o those_o that_o be_v of_o this_o number_n themselves_o and_o who_o conscience_n do_v inward_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v the_o man_n who_o be_v here_o paint_v forth_o and_o present_v to_o the_o world_n wherefore_o that_o those_o who_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o they_o may_v not_o be_v ensnare_v by_o they_o unaware_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v none_o such_o to_o deceive_v they_o and_o that_o i_o may_v decline_v the_o hatred_n and_o reproach_n which_o these_o enemy_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v hope_v to_o bring_v upon_o i_o for_o write_v against_o they_o i_o have_v collect_v and_o translate_v some_o few_o passage_n of_o mr._n calvin_n book_n against_o the_o furious_a sect_n of_o libertine_n wherein_o their_o opinion_n and_o practice_n be_v large_o discover_v which_o may_v persuade_v all_o man_n that_o there_o be_v such_o and_o may_v be_v such_o against_o who_o i_o speak_v though_o they_o know_v they_o not_o and_o may_v prevent_v the_o slander_n of_o those_o who_o be_v such_o chap._n 1._o in_o ancient_a history_n we_o do_v never_o read_v of_o any_o heresy_n that_o be_v so_o dangerous_a as_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o libertine_n chap._n 2._o he_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v those_o of_o who_o peter_n speak_v in_o the_o 2_o pet._n 2.12.17_o 18_o 19_o who_o shall_v allure_v man_n to_o error_n by_o their_o great_a swell_a word_n and_o those_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o 10._o verse_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o judas_n and_o do_v affirm_v that_o he_o have_v never_o understand_v the_o thing_n there_o speak_v of_o unless_o he_o have_v see_v they_o in_o those_o man_n of_o his_o time_n concern_v their_o swell_a kind_n of_o speak_v tumidum_fw-la dicendi_fw-la genus_fw-la he_o have_v these_o expression_n when_o thou_o shall_v begin_v to_o hear_v they_o thou_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o think_v that_o they_o be_v snatch_v up_o in_o a_o ecstasy_n above_o the_o cloud_n for_o beside_o this_o that_o they_o always_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n their_o speech_n be_v in_o such_o a_o strange_a idiom_n that_o man_n when_o they_o first_o hear_v they_o do_v stand_v still_o astonish_v in_o admiration_n of_o they_o he_o do_v parallel_v they_o with_o some_o ancient_a heretic_n and_o far_o enlarge_n himself_n concern_v they_o do_v give_v we_o this_o account_n of_o their_o proceed_n at_o the_o first_o they_o reject_v the_o scripture_n and_o scoff_v at_o all_o the_o apostle_n call_v paul_n a_o break_a vessel_n peter_n the_o denier_n of_o god_n john_n a_o stupid_a young_a man_n matthew_z a_o usurer_n but_o afterward_o when_o they_o perceive_v that_o all_o man_n abhor_v they_o they_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v to_o act_v more_o cautious_o and_o obscure_o and_o then_o they_o pretend_v that_o they_o do_v not_o reject_v the_o scripture_n but_o change_v it_o all_o into_o allegory_n and_o wrest_v it_o by_o strange_a and_o unheard_a of_o interpretation_n transform_v a_o horse_n into_o a_o man_n and_o as_o we_o vulgar_o speak_v feign_v a_o cloud_n to_o be_v the_o horn_n of_o a_o lantern_n of_o their_o subtlety_n which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a he_o afterward_o thus_o speak_v they_o do_v not_o declare_v to_o man_n what_o be_v their_o judgement_n but_o hold_v they_o in_o suspense_n a_o long_a while_n and_o lead_v they_o about_o by_o ambage_n who_o they_o do_v desire_v to_o bring_v to_o their_o sect_n not_o reveal_v their_o secret_n unto_o they_o before_o they_o be_v so_o delude_v and_o bewitch_v by_o they_o that_o they_o see_v they_o can_v persuade_v they_o to_o what_o they_o shall_v please_v etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o christian_n do_v profess_v concern_v eternal_a life_n and_o a_o surrection_n to_o the●_n be_v a_o fable_n chap._n 4._o he_o show_v the_o author_n and_o give_v his_o reason_n why_o he_o write_v against_o they_o shall_v i_o be_v silent_a when_o i_o see_v these_o man_n s●_n abuse_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o pretend_v to_o be_v for_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o name_n bring_v worse_a abomination_n into_o the_o world_n than_o ever_o be_v bring_v into_o it_o before_o shall_v i_o speak_v against_o papist_n and_o spare_v these_o who_o be_v more_o pernicious_a enemy_n to_o god_n than_o they_o and_o do_v more_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n chap._n 5._o where_o he_o discover_v the_o follower_n of_o these_o deluder_n some_o addict_v to_o foolish_a curiosity_n do_v apply_v their_o mind_n to_o vain_a and_o superfluous_a question_n when_o they_o shall_v rather_o follow_v thing_n which_o be_v profitable_a and_o for_o edification_n and_o be_v not_o content_v with_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v run_v to_o and_o fro_o in_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a speculation_n either_o for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o their_o mad_a and_o wicked_a lust_n or_o for_o the_o persuade_v of_o other_o that_o they_o be_v more_o witty_a than_o other_o man_n and_o do_v follow_v more_o sublime_a matter_n some_o be_v profane_a who_o be_v weary_a of_o the_o yoke_n of_o christ_n be_v willing_a that_o their_o conscience_n shall_v be_v rock_v into_o a_o sleep_n that_o without_o any_o religion_n they_o may_v serve_v the_o devil_n chap._n 6._o he_o wish_v man_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o pride_n rom._n 12.3_o and_o to_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o the_o pure_a and_o simple_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o which_o be_v lock_v up_o the_o infinite_a treasure_n of_o god_n chap._n 7._o of_o their_o idiom_n and_o manner_n of_o speak_v they_o use_v a_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o speak_v which_o be_v not_o understand_v of_o any_o but_o those_o of_o their_o own_o faction_n and_o fraternity_n etc._n etc._n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o they_o use_v common_a word_n but_o they_o do_v so_o deprave_v their_o signification_n that_o it_o be_v difficult_a to_o find_v out_o what_o they_o affirm_v or_o what_o they_o deny_v chap._n 8._o they_o will_v sometime_o deny_v what_o at_o another_o time_n they_o affirm_v and_o do_v transform_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o their_o heart_n etc._n etc._n the_o art_n of_o dissemble_v be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a chapter_n in_o their_o divinity_n they_o will_v conform_v to_o all_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o papist_n pretend_v that_o a_o christian_a man_n have_v liberty_n in_o all_o outward_a thing_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o their_o lie_a and_o dissemble_v they_o make_v use_v of_o this_o place_n that_o they_o must_v be_v as_o wise_a as_o serpent_n chap._n 9_o they_o account_v the_o scripture_n fable_n yet_o they_o make_v use_v of_o such_o place_n which_o they_o can_v wrest_v to_o their_o sense_n not_o that_o they_o believe_v they_o but_o that_o they_o may_v trouble_v and_o unsettle_v ignorant_a people_n if_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v bring_v against_o they_o they_o say_v that_o we_o stumble_v at_o the_o letter_n whereas_o we_o shall_v follow_v the_o quicken_a spirit_n although_o they_o be_v more_o pernicious_a than_o the_o papist_n yet_o this_o principle_n be_v common_a to_o they_o both_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v transform_v into_o allegory_n affect_v a_o better_a and_o more_o perfect_a wisdom_n then_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o chap._n 10._o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n always_o in_o their_o mouth_n and_o can_v scarce_o speak_v two_o little_a sentence_n without_o the_o repetition_n of_o it_o persuade_v man_n that_o they_o be_v spiritual_a and_o altogether_o divine_a by_o which_o mean_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n for_o they_o to_o deceive_v the_o best_a of_o saint_n until_o they_o come_v to_o understand_v unto_o what_o their_o spirituality_n tend_v and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o give_v a_o good_a direction_n for_o deal_v with_o they_o when_o they_o use_v a_o long_a
9.20_o o_o man_n who_o be_v thou_o that_o reply_v against_o god_n who_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o be_v will_v have_v mercy_n and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v and_o though_o man_n unacquainted_a with_o this_o truth_n may_v account_v this_o rather_o a_o shift_n or_o evasion_n than_o a_o answer_n to_o their_o carnal_a objection_n against_o election_n and_o reprobation_n yet_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o my_o answer_n it_o be_v a_o excellent_a speech_n of_o augustine_n christ_n great_a champion_n against_o antigratians_n in_o his_o time_n absit_fw-la ut_fw-la pudeat_fw-la nos_fw-la hoc_fw-la respondere_fw-la quod_fw-la respondisse_fw-la videmus_fw-la apostolum_n far_o be_v it_o from_o we_o to_o be_v ashamed_a to_o give_v the_o same_o answer_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v thou_o that_o reply_v against_o god_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o next_o place_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o in_o scripture_n salvation_n be_v take_v either_o negative_o or_o affirmative_o and_o take_v salvation_n in_o either_o of_o these_o acception_n and_o it_o will_v be_v evident_a that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o the_o first_o place_n if_o we_o take_v salvation_n negative_o as_o it_o be_v a_o deliverance_n or_o freedom_n from_o all_o evil_a and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o be_v free_v from_o evil_a only_o by_o grace_n it_o be_v a_o true_a rule_n gratiam_fw-la christi_fw-la nihil_fw-la praecedit_fw-la humani_fw-la nothing_o in_o man_n do_v precede_v or_o prevent_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o light_n and_o beam_n of_o grace_n do_v dispel_v the_o cloud_n of_o our_o sin_n not_o for_o our_o sake_n but_o for_o his_o name_n sake_n he_o cover_v our_o sin_n it_o be_v god_n prerogative_n to_o free_v we_o from_o sin_n by_o grace_n and_o to_o remove_v they_o far_o from_o we_o psal_n 103.12_o as_o far_o as_o the_o east_n be_v from_o the_o west_n so_o far_o he_o remove_v our_o transgression_n from_o we_o he_o only_o can_v remove_v sin_n against_o who_o it_o be_v commit_v he_o only_o can_v cast_v sin_n into_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o sea_n who_o have_v a_o ocean_n of_o grace_n in_o himself_o in_o which_o he_o swallow_v they_o up_o micah_n be_v spiritual_o transport_v beyond_o himself_o in_o admire_v this_o incommunicable_a prerogative_n of_o the_o god_n of_o grace_n micah_n 7.18_o who_o be_v a_o god_n like_o unto_o thou_o that_o pardon_v iniquity_n &_o c_o and_o who_o can_v think_v that_o he_o will_v part_v with_o this_o privilege_n which_o be_v his_o delight_n for_o so_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o verse_n he_o retain_v not_o his_o anger_n for_o ever_o because_o he_o delight_v in_o mercy_n second_o if_o we_o take_v salvation_n affirmative_o for_o the_o instate_v of_o man_n into_o a_o condition_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o all_o happiness_n and_o felicity_n so_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n we_o be_v make_v happy_a bring_v from_o a_o curse_a condition_n into_o a_o blissful_a condition_n from_o horror_n to_o joy_n from_o hell_n to_o heaven_n from_o the_o state_n of_o nature_n to_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n only_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o be_v only_o by_o grace_n that_o we_o be_v what_o we_o be_v by_o grace_n our_o sin_n be_v pardon_v by_o grace_n we_o have_v a_o inheritance_n with_o the_o saint_n by_o grace_n we_o be_v the_o high_a bear_v son_n of_o the_o great_a king_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n by_o grace_n we_o be_v bless_v and_o load_v with_o all_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a blessing_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o eternal_a felicity_n happiness_n and_o blissfulnesse_n thus_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n and_o by_o grace_n alone_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n do_v speak_v excellent_o to_o this_o purpose_n nemo_n se_fw-la palpet_fw-la de_fw-la svo_fw-la satanas_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr deo_fw-la beatus_fw-la est_fw-la quid_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la de_fw-fr svo_fw-la nisi_fw-la peccatum_fw-la suum_fw-la let_v no_o man_n boast_v of_o himself_o for_o of_o a_o man_n self_n he_o be_v a_o devil_n by_o god_n a_o man_n be_v make_v happy_a what_o be_v a_o man_n of_o himself_o but_o sin_n you_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n again_o salvation_n in_o scripture_n be_v take_v for_o salvation_n before_o god_n in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n and_o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o save_n of_o a_o party_n in_o his_o own_o spirit_n and_o conscience_n if_o we_o take_v it_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n a_o man_n be_v save_v in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n only_o by_o grace_n what_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o the_o accuse_a mouth_n of_o the_o law_n be_v stop_v no_o bill_n no_o enditement_n can_v be_v bring_v against_o the_o elect_a in_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n be_v it_o not_o this_o because_o god_n in_o his_o grace_n justifi_v they_o this_o be_v the_o apostle_n argument_n rom._n 8.33_o who_o shall_v lay_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o god_n elect_n it_o be_v god_n that_o justifi_v they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o can_v implead_v or_o bring_v a_o action_n against_o they_o before_o god_n for_o break_v his_o law_n he_o that_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o elect_n be_v their_o justifier_n grace_n have_v cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n which_o accuse_v they_o before_o god_n night_n and_o day_n rev._n 12.10_o the_o accuser_n can_v bring_v no_o enditement_n complaint_n or_o accusation_n against_o the_o saint_n there_o there_o be_v no_o sin_n in_o our_o conscience_n that_o can_v be_v hear_v to_o accuse_v we_o in_o heaven_n because_o there_o be_v grace_n for_o our_o justification_n god_n behold_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n before_o his_o eye_n upon_o who_o he_o have_v lay_v all_o our_o sin_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v with_o powerful_a and_o undeniable_a argument_n plead_v for_o those_o for_o who_o it_o be_v shed_v the_o stray_a and_o straggle_a sheep_n which_o be_v within_o the_o reach_n of_o god_n eternal_a grace_n can_v be_v condemn_v because_o the_o good_a shepherd_n have_v give_v his_o life_n for_o the_o sheep_n joh._n 10.11_o god_n know_v that_o he_o have_v receive_v satisfaction_n before_o hand_n for_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o be_v not_o now_o to_o pay_v any_o thing_n but_o have_v already_o make_v payment_n for_o all_o their_o debt_n and_o be_v become_v the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v seal_v in_o his_o own_o blood_n under_o which_o covenant_n upon_o this_o consideration_n there_o can_v be_v no_o remembrance_n of_o sin_n heb._n 10.14_o god_n behold_v his_o elect_n in_o their_o propitiation_n and_o always_o hear_v the_o sweet_a voice_n of_o their_o wrath-appeasing_a advocate_n make_v a_o heavenly_a melody_n in_o his_o ear_n and_o always_o behold_v our_o happiness_n before_o himself_o in_o heaven_n lie_v wrap_v up_o in_o his_o own_o grace_n do_v acquaint_v we_o in_o his_o word_n of_o truth_n that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n second_o if_o we_o take_v salvation_n in_o the_o other_o sense_n for_o salvation_n in_o our_o spirit_n and_o conscience_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n there_o can_v be_v no_o salvation_n bring_v home_o to_o our_o heart_n but_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o grace_n if_o we_o have_v the_o sanctification_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n which_o have_v live_v since_o the_o fall_n of_o man_n and_o shall_v look_v upon_o it_o all_o as_o we_o to_o give_v comfort_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o assure_v we_o that_o we_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o shall_v not_o look_v above_o it_o to_o behold_v god_n grace_n and_o our_o sanctification_n in_o it_o and_o from_o it_o it_o will_v not_o give_v we_o any_o solid_a comfort_n or_o assurance_n of_o our_o falvation_n nothing_o can_v shine_v in_o the_o heart_n to_o give_v it_o any_o comfort_n but_o what_o do_v shine_v and_o give_v light_a in_o the_o light_n and_o beam_n of_o this_o grace_n we_o never_o come_v to_o see_v ourselves_o in_o a_o condition_n of_o safety_n till_o we_o see_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n look_v unto_o i_o and_o be_v save_v all_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o i_o be_o god_n and_o there_o be_v none_o else_o isaiah_n 45.22_o none_o but_o god_n can_v save_v we_o and_o nothing_o but_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n can_v bring_v salvation_n to_o we_o still_o we_o have_v some_o objection_n or_o other_o against_o salvation_n and_o justification_n till_o god_n silence_n all_o objection_n by_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n there_o be_v that_o only_a in_o god_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o will_v silence_v all_o objection_n if_o our_o conscience_n fly_v in_o our_o face_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o have_v commit_v many_o thousand_o of_o sin_n more_o than_o we_o can_v reckon_v or_o number_v up_o yet_o when_o god_n give_v we_o a_o
the_o dark_a dungeon_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o be_v not_o discover_v and_o make_v visible_a unto_o we_o until_o we_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o the_o 3_o place_n the_o holy_a spirit_n speak_v of_o natural_a man_n without_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o inform_v we_o that_o they_o be_v darken_v and_o have_v their_o seat_n in_o darkness_n but_o they_o love_v darkness_n they_o be_v please_v with_o their_o present_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o darkness_n they_o be_v unwilling_a to_o have_v any_o light_n break_v forth_o upon_o they_o so_o our_o saviour_n say_v john_n 3.19_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o man_n love_v darkness_n they_o love_v unbelief_n and_o ignorance_n they_o have_v rather_o be_v the_o devil_n prisoner_n in_o dungeon_n of_o darkness_n then_o enjoy_v their_o liberty_n in_o christ_n marvellous_a light_n they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v unable_a to_o make_v themselves_o happy_a in_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v in_o love_n with_o their_o own_o unhappiness_n they_o will_v not_o come_v to_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n they_o be_v unwilling_a that_o christ_n shall_v reign_v over_o they_o though_o he_o do_v offer_v salvation_n unto_o they_o they_o say_v unto_o god_n depart_v from_o we_o for_o we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n job_n 21.14_o like_o the_o gadarens_n they_o do_v desire_n jesus_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o their_o coast_n they_o be_v the_o slave_n of_o sin_n and_o free_a from_o righteousness_n rom._n 6.20_o when_o they_o be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o command_n of_o righteousness_n they_o do_v account_v it_o their_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n as_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n be_v liberty_n to_o a_o saint_n cvi_fw-la servire_fw-la regnare_fw-la est_fw-la aug._n so_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n be_v account_v liberty_n by_o a_o carnal_a man_n they_o be_v like_o the_o servant_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bore_v through_o the_o ear_n upon_o his_o profession_n that_o he_o love_v his_o master_n and_o will_v not_o go_v out_o free_a exod._n 21.5_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o every_o man_n out_o of_o christ_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o love_v his_o master_n he_o love_v the_o devil_n &_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v sweet_a and_o please_a to_o he_o he_o have_v rather_o live_v as_o a_o swine_n and_o wallow_v in_o the_o filth_n and_o mire_n of_o sin_n then_o taste_v of_o those_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n he_o have_v rather_o do_v the_o devil_n drudgery_n then_o enjoy_v that_o perfect_a freedom_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v against_o his_o heart_n and_o the_o whole_a bent_n frame_n stream_n strength_n and_o current_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o be_v desire_v entreat_v and_o beseech_v to_o give_v entertainment_n to_o christ_n he_o be_v rather_o content_v to_o live_v as_o a_o slave_n with_o satan_n then_o to_o rule_v as_o a_o king_n with_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o evil_a tree_n and_o can_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n to_o make_v himself_o good_a homo_fw-la extra_fw-la christume_v mala_fw-la arbour_n hier._n as_o a_o evil_a tree_n can_v bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n to_o make_v itself_o good_a so_o a_o evil_a man_n be_v a_o evil_a tree_n all_o his_o thought_n word_n and_o action_n be_v evil_a fruit_n by_o which_o he_o can_v make_v himself_o good_a he_o can_v therefore_o of_o himself_o bring_v forth_o the_o good_a fruit_n of_o faith_n again_o the_o scripture_n rise_v high_a in_o spiritual_a expression_n to_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o the_o sad_a and_o woeful_a condition_n of_o a_o unbelieving_a man_n he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o lover_n of_o darkness_n and_o seat_v in_o darkness_n but_o he_o be_v darkness_n itself_o in_o the_o abstract_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o ephesian_n before_o their_o conversion_n say_v ephes_n 5.8_o you_o be_v sometime_o darkness_n consonant_a to_o which_o word_n be_v that_o speech_n of_o john_n john_n 1.5_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n that_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a heart_n of_o unbelieve_a man_n but_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o there_o do_v lie_v more_o in_o this_o expression_n then_o in_o the_o former_a it_o be_v more_o to_o be_v darkness_n then_o to_o be_v darken_v now_o we_o be_v not_o only_o darken_v in_o our_o understanding_n but_o our_o understanding_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o darkness_n man_n without_o christ_n may_v think_v that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o knowledge_n &_o wisdom_n but_o true_o the_o holy_a ghost_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o their_o light_n and_o understanding_n be_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n there_o be_v as_o much_o contrariety_n between_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n as_o there_o be_v between_o light_n and_o darkness_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o the_o natural_a mancannot_v of_o himselfeobtaine_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n rom._n 8.7_o the_o carnal_a mind_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v be_v the_o apostle_n do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a but_o he_o say_v that_o it_o can_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o make_v it_o a_o thing_n impossible_a according_a to_o that_o which_o he_o himself_o deliver_v 1_o cor._n 2.14_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o the_o word_n be_v very_o emphatical_a in_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o man_n that_o have_v a_o soul_n look_v upon_o he_o in_o his_o best_a part_n in_o his_o ration_n all_o soul_n which_o he_o have_v as_o a_o man_n and_o in_o that_o and_o by_o that_o he_o can_v receive_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n look_v upon_o the_o rational_a man_n with_o his_o morality_n with_o humane_a learning_n art_n &_o science_n with_o his_o literal_a knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n &_o gospel_n look_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o be_v sublimate_v in_o his_o intellectual_n and_o as_o he_o have_v make_v the_o high_a improvement_n of_o his_o learning_n part_n gift_n and_o endowment_n as_o he_o be_v the_o world_n delight_n for_o his_o worldly_a wisdom_n as_o he_o be_v admire_v by_o man_n for_o his_o prudence_n and_o eloquence_n with_o all_o this_o he_o be_v blind_a to_o the_o all-seeing_a eye_n of_o god_n and_o can_v receive_v or_o apprehend_v the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v a_o fool_n with_o his_o wisdom_n &_o a_o ignorant_a man_n with_o his_o learning_n a_o wretched_a sinner_n with_o all_o his_o good_a work_n &_o moral_a virtue_n and_o no_o more_o able_a to_o open_v the_o blind_a eye_n of_o his_o soul_n that_o he_o may_v see_v the_o sun_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o saint_n then_o a_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v blind_a be_v able_a to_o give_v himself_o fight_v and_o bodily_a eye_n to_o hehold_v the_o sun_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o world_n he_o be_v not_o able_a by_o the_o acuteness_n of_o his_o reason_n the_o sharpness_n of_o his_o understanding_n nor_o the_o largeness_n of_o his_o part_n gift_n endowment_n natural_a or_o acquire_v to_o attain_v unto_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o they_o be_v mere_a foolishness_n unto_o he_o so_o that_o by_o this_o consideration_n it_o will_v be_v evident_a that_o if_o we_o look_v on_o say_v as_o it_o be_v a_o light_n in_o the_o understanding_n that_o then_o a_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bring_v this_o light_n into_o his_o own_o understanding_n but_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o his_o understanding_n oppose_v the_o glorious_a light_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a upon_o this_o account_n for_o a_o man_n to_o believe_v of_o himself_o but_o i●_n the_o second_o place_n if_o we_o look_v on_o faith_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v the_o light_n of_o god_n in_o the_o understanding_n but_o if_o we_o look_v on_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o will_n so_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o we_o believe_v not_o of_o ourselves_o and_o that_o no_o man_n ever_o in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o strength_n or_o improvement_n of_o his_o free_a will_n be_v ever_o able_a to_o believe_v what_o god_n have_v report_v concern_v his_o own_o grace_n in_o his_o son_n jesus_n for_o as_o a_o man_n be_v darkness_n in_o his_o understanding_n so_o he_o be_v nothing_o but_o rebellion_n in_o his_o will_n as_o the_o darkness_n in_o his_o understanding_n oppose_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o beam_n of_o gospell-truth_n so_o likewise_o the_o strength_n force_n &_o prevalency_n
of_o the_o rebellion_n in_o his_o will_n fight_v against_o all_o the_o discovery_n that_o may_v be_v make_v of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o he_o this_o be_v set_v forth_o most_o plain_o to_o we_o by_o john_n john_n 1.13_o where_o speak_v of_o the_o saint_n he_o say_v they_o be_v bear_v not_o of_o blood_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o flesh_n not_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o will_n of_o the_o rational_a man_n spiritual_o &_o true_o to_o will_v his_o own_o regeneration_n let_v a_o man_n make_v the_o best_a use_n he_o can_v of_o his_o will_n let_v he_o put_v forth_o himself_o to_o the_o best_a resolution_n he_o can_v make_v let_v he_o resolve_v to_o do_v nothing_o but_o seek_v christ_n and_o study_v to_o know_v he_o yet_o if_o a_o man_n be_v only_o in_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o own_o resolution_n he_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o find_v out_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o apostle_n paul_n be_v plain_a in_o this_o point_n rom._n 9.16_o it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o will_v or_o of_o he_o that_o run_v but_o of_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n a_o man_n may_v have_v some_o weak_a resolution_n of_o himself_o and_o to_o seek_v christ_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n kingdom_n but_o unless_o he_o be_v carry_v out_o with_o a_o high_a principle_n and_o a_o great_a power_n than_o his_o own_o will_n to_o christ_n he_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o effect_v what_o he_o seem_v to_o desireto_o have_v effect_v and_o wrought_v in_o he_o in_o libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la nulla_fw-la est_fw-la libertas_fw-la sed_fw-la servitus_fw-la free_a will_n be_v not_o free_a but_o a_o slave_n there_o be_v nofreedome_n but_o slavery_n in_o it_o it_o be_v not_o free_a to_o good_a unless_o it_o be_v free_v from_o sin_n by_o grace_n si_fw-la stare_n non_fw-la potuit_fw-la humana_fw-la natura_fw-la adhuc_fw-la integra_fw-la quomedo_fw-la potest_fw-la resurgere_fw-la jam_fw-la corrupta_fw-la bern._n if_o man_n in_o the_o state_n of_o integrity_n can_v not_o stand_v of_o himself_o how_o shall_v he_o of_o himself_o in_o his_o state_n of_o corruption_n be_v able_a to_o rise_v now_o he_o be_v fall_v unless_o god_n come_v down_o with_o a_o mighty_a power_n and_o force_v we_o against_o our_o natural_a will_n to_o receive_v christ_n we_o shall_v never_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n no_o man_n say_v christ_n can_v come_v to_o i_o except_o the_o father_n draw_v he_o joh._n 6.44_o nolentes_fw-la trahimur_fw-la you_o know_v when_o a_o man_n be_v draw_v he_o be_v draw_v against_o his_o will_n i_o need_v not_o draw_v a_o man_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o come_v after_o i_o if_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o go_v after_o god_n in_o our_o conversion_n we_o shall_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o no_o draw_v but_o you_o see_v that_o god_n must_v compel_v we_o to_o come_v in_o to_o jesus_n or_o else_o we_o will_v never_o come_v in_o unto_o he_o nor_o submit_v unto_o his_o will_n i_o will_v not_o here_o be_v mistake_v i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o when_o a_o man_n do_v take_v christ_n that_o he_o be_v unwilling_a to_o take_v he_o but_o he_o receive_v he_o willing_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o natural_a will_n that_o a_o man_n be_v make_v willing_a but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o grace_n exit_fw-la nolentibus_fw-la volentes_fw-la facit_fw-la god_n make_v we_o who_o be_v unwilling_a to_o entertain_v his_o son_n by_o nature_n willing_a to_o entertain_v he_o by_o grace_n and_o the_o will_v act_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o supernatural_a grace_n do_v act_n in_o a_o contrary_a way_n to_o itself_o when_o it_o act_v in_o the_o strength_n of_o corrupt_a nature_n by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_o prove_v that_o the_o will_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n be_v insufficient_a of_o itself_o to_o bring_v about_o the_o salvation_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n we_o be_v change_v into_o the_o image_n of_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o from_o whence_o one_o do_v draw_v this_o rational_a conclusion_n that_o if_o we_o be_v change_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o then_o it_o be_v not_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o free_a will_n simo_n a_o domini_fw-la spiritu_fw-la jam_fw-la non_fw-la a_o libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la and_o we_o may_v draw_v the_o same_o conclusion_n from_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n phil._n 2.13_o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v god_n that_o work_v in_o we_o both_o to_o will_v and_o to_o do_v of_o his_o own_o good_a pleasure_n if_o god_n do_v work_v in_o we_o to_o will_v what_o be_v good_a than_o we_o do_v not_o work_v it_o in_o ourselves_o by_o which_o it_o be_v clear_o demonstrate_v that_o if_o faith_n be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o work_n in_o the_o will_n by_o which_o it_o be_v make_v willing_a to_o receive_v christ_n and_o his_o righteousness_n for_o justification_n that_o then_o faith_n can_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o from_o ourselves_o but_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n a_o second_o argument_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o consider_v the_o disability_n of_o man_n already_o convert_v to_o do_v any_o good_a of_o themselves_o and_o thus_o i_o frame_v my_o argument_n if_o man_n already_o convert_v be_v not_o able_a to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n or_o to_o put_v forth_o one_o act_n of_o faith_n of_o themselves_o then_o man_n unconvert_v be_v not_o able_a to_o believe_v of_o themselves_o before_o conversion_n but_o man_n already_o convert_v be_v not_o able_a to_o think_v one_o good_a thought_n or_o to_o put_v forth_o one_o act_n of_o faith_n of_o themselves_o therefore_o unconvert_v man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o believe_v of_o themselves_o there_o be_v that_o strength_n in_o the_o first_o proposition_n that_o i_o suppose_v no_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o scholar_n in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o spirit_n will_v question_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o for_o shall_v a_o man_n question_v it_o he_o shall_v by_o his_o question_n of_o it_o attribute_v a_o great_a strength_n to_o unconvert_v then_o convert_v man_n which_o be_v such_o a_o absurdity_n in_o divinity_n that_o i_o think_v no_o spiritual_a man_n will_v be_v guilty_a of_o it_o and_o for_o the_o minor_a or_o second_o proposition_n it_o be_v back_v with_o such_o plain_a authority_n of_o scripture_n that_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o any_o man_n to_o deny_v it_o how_o plain_o do_v paul_n deliver_v himself_o in_o this_o point_n 2_o cor._n 3.5_o where_o speak_v of_o saint_n he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o sufficient_a of_o ourselves_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o our_o sufficiency_n be_v of_o god_n what_o spiritual_a act_n be_v more_o easy_a then_o to_o think_v a_o good_a thought_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o think_v well_o then_o to_o speak_v well_o or_o do_v well_o we_o often_o think_v good_a thought_n that_o never_o come_v out_o upon_o the_o tongue_n or_o appear_v in_o the_o action_n yet_o holy_a paul_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o profess_v that_o the_o best_a of_o we_o all_o can_v think_v any_o thing_n as_o of_o ourselves_o which_o may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o proposition_n where_o we_o say_v that_o he_o can_v put_v forth_o one_o act_n of_o faith_n in_o believe_v our_o spirit_n be_v place_v and_o fix_v upon_o god_n and_o we_o be_v fill_v with_o high_a thought_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o son_n to_o his_o glory_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o can_v think_v well_o certain_o we_o can_v believe_v well_o and_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v of_o ourselves_o after_o we_o do_v believe_v will_v be_v evident_a by_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o apostle_n luke_n 17.5_o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n what_o necessity_n be_v there_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v pray_v to_o their_o mr._n for_o the_o increase_n of_o their_o faith_n if_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n they_o can_v have_v believe_v when_o they_o have_v please_v and_o thus_o i_o have_v at_o once_o both_o prove_v my_o argument_n and_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n that_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o this_o argument_n be_v a_fw-fr majore_fw-la ad_fw-la minus_fw-la as_o we_o speak_v in_o logic_n from_o the_o great_a to_o the_o less_o if_o the_o great_a can_v do_v nothing_o the_o less_o can_v if_o convert_a man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o towards_o this_o excellent_a work_n of_o faith_n then_o unconvert_v man_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o man_n who_o have_v a_o life_n in_o christ_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o themselves_o therefore_o such_o who_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n can_v do_v nothing_o of_o themselves_o but_o god_n must_v do_v all_o in_o we_o by_o his_o grace_n the_o three_o argument_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o this_o
29.11_o wherefore_o let_v we_o be_v willing_a to_o receive_v christ_n by_o faith_n and_o to_o receive_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n god_n must_v clothe_v thou_o with_o his_o son_n and_o give_v thou_o faith_n to_o put_v he_o on_o refuse_v not_o this_o glorious_a garment_n because_o god_n will_v give_v it_o thou_o free_o but_o be_v content_v to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n and_o faith_n according_a to_o god_n own_o pleasure_n think_v not_o with_o simon_n magus_n to_o buy_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n faith_n be_v a_o free_a gift_n god_n will_v not_o sell_v a_o diamond_n for_o dung_n faith_n be_v a_o precious_a diamond_n in_o a_o christian_n crown_n work_n before_o faith_n but_o dung_n phil._n 3._o cease_v then_o from_o think_v by_o thy_o own_o work_n to_o purchase_v that_o faith_n which_o god_n do_v intend_v free_o to_o give_v unto_o man_n because_o man_n can_v give_v no_o considerable_a price_n for_o it_o make_v no_o more_o word_n in_o bargain_v with_o god_n for_o faith_n he_o will_v give_v unto_o he_o that_o be_v athirst_a of_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o rev._n 21.6_o let_v no_o man_n be_v keep_v back_o by_o his_o old_a age_n or_o sin_n from_o hope_v to_o obtain_v salvation_n through_o faith_n while_o we_o be_v in_o this_o world_n no_o repentance_n be_v too_o late_o there_o be_v a_o way_n to_o mercy_n nec_fw-la quisquam_fw-la aut_fw-la peccatis_fw-la retardebitur_fw-la aut_fw-la annis_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la consequendam_fw-la in_o isto_fw-la adhuc_fw-la mundo_fw-la manenti_fw-la paenitentia_fw-la nulla_fw-la sera_fw-it est_fw-la patet_fw-la ad_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la additus_fw-la cyprian_n object_n but_o if_o faith_n be_v such_o a_o free_a gift_n why_o do_v not_o god_n give_v the_o same_o measure_n of_o faith_n unto_o all_o believer_n answ_n he_o may_v do_v what_o he_o will_v with_o his_o own_o he_o may_v give_v he_o the_o great_a measure_n of_o faith_n who_o deserve_v faith_n lest_o ephes_n 4.7_o unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o be_v give_v faith_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o man_n that_o give_v measure_n of_o wheat_n free_o to_o beggar_n may_v give_v one_o more_o and_o another_o less_o without_o do_v any_o wrong_n so_o god_n may_v measure_v forth_o faith_n unto_o we_o large_o according_a to_o his_o own_o will_n wlthout_n wrong_v those_o who_o have_v do_v more_o for_o he_o and_o receive_v less_o we_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o complain_v or_o murmur_v against_o god_n because_o he_o be_v abundant_o gracious_a to_o who_o he_o please_v but_o shall_v rather_o admire_v his_o free_a grace_n and_o see_v faith_n with_o every_o act_n and_o degree_n of_o it_o be_v a_o gift_n of_o unmerited_a grace_n let_v we_o who_o do_v believe_v wait_v for_o the_o increase_n of_o faith_n as_o a_o gift_n cease_v from_o our_o own_o work_n understanding_n and_o ability_n yet_o here_o lest_o i_o shall_v be_v mistake_v let_v i_o add_v this_o caution_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o neglect_v gospel-duty_n by_o hear_v of_o gospel-promise_n promise_n shall_v not_o prove_v occasion_n of_o sloth_n to_o to_o the_o faithful_a but_o shall_v be_v argument_n and_o incentives_n to_o spiritual_a activity_n 2_o cor._n 7.1_o have_v these_o promise_n let_v we_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthivesse_n etc._n etc._n seven_o let_v we_o prize_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n we_o prize_v gift_n because_o there_o be_v usual_o some_o preciousness_n and_o goodness_n in_o they_o or_o else_o for_o the_o giver_n sake_n faith_n be_v precious_a in_o itself_o 1_o pet._n 1.1_o god_n gift_n have_v something_o of_o his_o own_o goodness_n in_o they_o and_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v prize_v because_o it_o be_v from_o he_o it_o be_v say_v of_o elkanah_n that_o he_o give_v portion_n to_o peninnah_n and_o her_o son_n and_o daughtea_n but_o unto_o hannah_n he_o give_v a_o worthy_a portion_n for_o he_o love_v she_o 1_o sam._n 1.4_o 5._o so_o god_n do_v give_v portion_n to_o the_o man_n of_o the_o world_n but_o his_o worthy_a portion_n of_o love_n to_o his_o saint_n through_o faith_n and_o therefore_o prize_v it_o imitate_v those_o bless_a soul_n who_o have_v show_v unto_o we_o by_o their_o good_a example_n how_o they_o prize_v faith_n who_o be_v content_v to_o part_n rather_o with_o their_o honour_n pleasure_n riches_n preferment_n yea_o their_o own_o life_n then_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n they_o love_v not_o their_o life_n unto_o the_o death_n rev._n 8_o faith_n be_v a_o great_a gift_n which_o if_o thou_o have_v it_o thou_o know_v that_o thou_o have_v free_o receive_v it_o fides_n magnum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la si_fw-la habes_fw-la profecto_fw-la accepisti_fw-la aug._n and_o therefore_o look_v up_o unto_o god_n for_o wretched_a unbelieving_a creature_n think_v that_o they_o may_v rec●ve_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n which_o they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o deserve_v as_o a_o reward_n this_o may_v strengthen_v faith_n much_o when_o we_o be_v before_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n beg_v faith_n for_o poor_a sinner_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o free_a gift_n jeremiah_n make_v use_v of_o such_o a_o argument_n to_o strengthen_v his_o faith_n jer._n 14.7_o though_o our_o iniquity_n do_v testify_v against_o we_o do_v for_o thy_o name_n sake_n o_o the_o happiness_n of_o those_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o free_a grace_n they_o may_v expect_v all_o thing_n for_o themselves_o and_o other_o as_o free_a gift_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o they_o though_o they_o can_v expect_v nothing_o as_o deserve_a wage_n last_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n for_o his_o unspcakable_a grace_n in_o give_v faith_n unto_o thou_o my_o faith_n o_o lord_n say_v one_o have_v call_v upon_o thou_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v unto_o i_o and_o which_o thou_o have_v inspire_v into_o i_o invoeavit_fw-la te_fw-la demine_a fides_fw-la mea_fw-la quam_fw-la dedisti_fw-la mihi_fw-la quam_fw-la inspirasti_fw-la mihi_fw-la aug._n cons_n so_o bless_v god_n with_o that_o faith_n and_o for_o that_o faith_n which_o god_n have_v free_o give_v thou_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n to_o know_v god_n 1_o joh._n 5.20_o and_o this_o knowledge_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o faith_n quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la fides_fw-la quam_fw-la vera_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la cognitio_fw-la cyp._n and_o therefore_o bless_v god_n in_o the_o son_n for_o this_o faith_n thou_o may_v have_v lie_v in_o the_o dark_a dungeon_n of_o a_o unbelieve_a heart_n to_o this_o day_n and_o thou_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o wonderful_a light_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n through_o faith_n the_o son_n have_v make_v thou_o free_a and_o thou_o be_v free_a indeed_o by_o believe_v be_v free_a in_o render_v large_o the_o tribute_n of_o praise_n to_o he_o who_o through_o faith_n have_v knock_v off_o the_o shackle_n &_o setter_n of_o bondage_n from_o thy_o soul_n give_v thyself_o to_o he_o who_o have_v give_v himself_o and_o his_o son_n to_o thou_o through_o faith_n and_o begin_v to_o live_v the_o heavenly_a life_n of_o glory_n in_o give_v glory_n and_o praise_n to_o he_o who_o have_v give_v thou_o the_o glory_n of_o union_n with_o himself_o in_o his_o son_n through_o faith_n joh._n 17._o give_v praise_n to_o the_o king_n of_o zion_n who_o have_v redeem_v thou_o to_o god_n by_o his_o own_o blood_n and_o make_v thou_o a_o king_n and_o priest_n and_o have_v assure_v thou_o that_o thou_o shall_v reign_v upon_o the_o earth_n say_v of_o faith_n and_o all_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o spirit_n as_o jacob_n of_o his_o child_n these_o be_v child_n which_o god_n have_v gracious_o give_v unto_o his_o servant_n ascribe_v nothing_o to_o thyself_o but_o all_o to_o he_o from_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n salvation_n to_o our_o god_n which_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n and_o to_o the_o lamb_n and_o sing_v in_o faith_n with_o all_o saint_n who_o love_n christ_n in_o sincerity_n revel_v 6.12_o blessing_n and_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n and_o thank_n give_v and_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o may_v be_v unto_o our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n sermon_n vi._n the_o heaven-borne_a man_n sin_v not_o 1_o john_n 3.9_o whosoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n do_v not_o commit_v sin_n for_o his_o seed_n remain_v in_o he_o and_o he_o can_v sin_v because_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n god_n in_o his_o grace_n have_v shine_v into_o my_o spirit_n by_o read_v of_o these_o word_n which_o have_v incline_v my_o spirit_n to_o speak_v from_o these_o word_n the_o truth_n of_o christ_n be_v likely_a to_o prove_v powerful_a upon_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o hearer_n when_o they_o be_v second_v with_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o speaker_n i_o be_o therefore_o embolden_v to_o acquaint_v you_o with_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v wrap_v up_o in_o these_o